kecilkan semua  

Teks -- 1 Peter 3:1-22 (NET)

Tampilkan Strong
Konteks
Wives and Husbands
3:1 In the same way, wives, be subject to your own husbands. Then, even if some are disobedient to the word, they will be won over without a word by the way you live, 3:2 when they see your pure and reverent conduct. 3:3 Let your beauty not be external– the braiding of hair and wearing of gold jewelry or fine clothes3:4 but the inner person of the heart, the lasting beauty of a gentle and tranquil spirit, which is precious in God’s sight. 3:5 For in the same way the holy women who hoped in God long ago adorned themselves by being subject to their husbands, 3:6 like Sarah who obeyed Abraham, calling him lord. You become her children when you do what is good and have no fear in doing so. 3:7 Husbands, in the same way, treat your wives with consideration as the weaker partners and show them honor as fellow heirs of the grace of life. In this way nothing will hinder your prayers.
Suffering for Doing Good
3:8 Finally, all of you be harmonious, sympathetic, affectionate, compassionate, and humble. 3:9 Do not return evil for evil or insult for insult, but instead bless others because you were called to inherit a blessing. 3:10 For the one who wants to love life and see good days must keep his tongue from evil and his lips from uttering deceit. 3:11 And he must turn away from evil and do good; he must seek peace and pursue it. 3:12 For the eyes of the Lord are upon the righteous and his ears are open to their prayer. But the Lord’s face is against those who do evil. 3:13 For who is going to harm you if you are devoted to what is good? 3:14 But in fact, if you happen to suffer for doing what is right, you are blessed. But do not be terrified of them or be shaken. 3:15 But set Christ apart as Lord in your hearts and always be ready to give an answer to anyone who asks about the hope you possess. 3:16 Yet do it with courtesy and respect, keeping a good conscience, so that those who slander your good conduct in Christ may be put to shame when they accuse you. 3:17 For it is better to suffer for doing good, if God wills it, than for doing evil. 3:18 Because Christ also suffered once for sins, the just for the unjust, to bring you to God, by being put to death in the flesh but by being made alive in the spirit. 3:19 In it he went and preached to the spirits in prison, 3:20 after they were disobedient long ago when God patiently waited in the days of Noah as an ark was being constructed. In the ark a few, that is eight souls, were delivered through water. 3:21 And this prefigured baptism, which now saves you– not the washing off of physical dirt but the pledge of a good conscience to God– through the resurrection of Jesus Christ, 3:22 who went into heaven and is at the right hand of God with angels and authorities and powers subject to him.
Paralel   Ref. Silang (TSK)   ITL  

Nama Orang, Nama Tempat, Topik/Tema Kamus

Nama Orang dan Nama Tempat:
 · Abraham a son of Terah; the father of Isaac; ancestor of the Jewish nation.,the son of Terah of Shem
 · Noah a son of Lamech and the father of Shem, Ham, and Japheth,son of Lamech; builder of the ark,daughter of Zelophehad
 · Sarah the wife of Abraham and the mother of Isaac,daughter of Terah; wife of Abraham


Topik/Tema Kamus: Wife | MARRIAGE | Righteousness | PETER, THE FIRST EPISTLE OF | Commandments | Persecution | ESSENES | Quotations and Allusions | SALVATION | Righteous | Speaking | REGENERATION | Hair | God | Jesus, The Christ | Influence | Example | Reward | Noah | Meekness | selebihnya
Daftar Isi

Catatan Kata/Frasa
Robertson , Vincent , Wesley , JFB , Clarke , Calvin , Defender , TSK

Catatan Kata/Frasa
Poole , PBC , Haydock , Gill

Catatan Ayat / Catatan Kaki
NET Notes , Geneva Bible

Catatan Rentang Ayat
Maclaren , MHCC , Matthew Henry , Barclay , Constable , College

Lainnya
Evidence

kecilkan semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Kata/Frasa (per frasa)

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - In like manner In like manner ( homoiōs ). Adverb closely connected with hupotassomenoi , for which see note on 1Pe 2:18.

In like manner ( homoiōs ).

Adverb closely connected with hupotassomenoi , for which see note on 1Pe 2:18.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - Ye wives Ye wives ( gunaikes ). Without article. About wives see note on Col 3:18; and note on Eph 5:22; and note on Tit 2:4.

Ye wives ( gunaikes ).

Without article. About wives see note on Col 3:18; and note on Eph 5:22; and note on Tit 2:4.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - To your own husbands To your own husbands ( tois idiois andrasin ). Idiois occurs also in Ephesians and Titus, but not in Colossians. It strengthens the idea of possess...

To your own husbands ( tois idiois andrasin ).

Idiois occurs also in Ephesians and Titus, but not in Colossians. It strengthens the idea of possession in the article tois . Wives are not enjoined to be in subjection to the husbands of other women, as some think it fine to be (affinities!)

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - Even if any obey not the word Even if any obey not the word ( kai ei tines apeithousin tōi logōi ). Condition of first class and dative case of logos (1Pe 1:23, 1Pe 1:25; 1P...

Even if any obey not the word ( kai ei tines apeithousin tōi logōi ).

Condition of first class and dative case of logos (1Pe 1:23, 1Pe 1:25; 1Pe 2:8), that is, remain heathen.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - That they be gained That they be gained ( hina kerdēthēsontai ). Purpose clause with hina and first future passive indicative of kerdainō , old verb, to gain (fr...

That they be gained ( hina kerdēthēsontai ).

Purpose clause with hina and first future passive indicative of kerdainō , old verb, to gain (from kerdos , gain, interest) as in Mat 18:15. See the future with hina also in Luk 20:10; Rev 3:9.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - Without the word Without the word ( aneu logou ). Probably here "word from their wives"(Hart), the other sense of logos (talk, not technical "word of God").

Without the word ( aneu logou ).

Probably here "word from their wives"(Hart), the other sense of logos (talk, not technical "word of God").

Robertson: 1Pe 3:1 - By the behaviour of their wives By the behaviour of their wives ( dia tēs tōn gunaikōn anastrophēs ). Won by pious living, not by nagging. Many a wife has had this blessed v...

By the behaviour of their wives ( dia tēs tōn gunaikōn anastrophēs ).

Won by pious living, not by nagging. Many a wife has had this blessed victory of grace.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:2 - Beholding Beholding ( epopteusantes ). First aorist active participle of epopteuō , for which see note on 1Pe 2:12. See 1Pe 2:12 also for anastrophēn man...

Beholding ( epopteusantes ).

First aorist active participle of epopteuō , for which see note on 1Pe 2:12. See 1Pe 2:12 also for anastrophēn manner of life).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:2 - Chaste Chaste ( hagnēn ). Pure because "in fear"(en phobōi ), no word in the Greek for "coupled,"fear of God, though in Eph 5:33 fear (reverence for) o...

Chaste ( hagnēn ).

Pure because "in fear"(en phobōi ), no word in the Greek for "coupled,"fear of God, though in Eph 5:33 fear (reverence for) of the husband is urged.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:3 - Whose adorning Whose adorning ( hōn kosmos ). Genitive plural of the relative referring to gunaikōn (wives). Kosmos has here its old meaning of ornament (cf...

Whose adorning ( hōn kosmos ).

Genitive plural of the relative referring to gunaikōn (wives). Kosmos has here its old meaning of ornament (cf. our cosmetics), not the common one of world (Joh 17:5) considered as an orderly whole. Mundus in Latin is used in this double sense (ornament, world).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:3 - Let it be Let it be ( estō ). Imperative third singular of eimi . Not the outward adorning of plaiting the hair (ouch ho exōthen emplokēs trichōn ). T...

Let it be ( estō ).

Imperative third singular of eimi . Not the outward adorning of plaiting the hair (ouch ho exōthen emplokēs trichōn ). The use of ouch here rather than mē (usual negative with the imperative) because of the sharp contrast in 1Pe 3:4 (all' ). The old adverb exōthen (from without) is in the attributive position like an adjective. Emplokē is a late word (from emplekō , to inweave, 2Ti 2:4; 2Pe 2:20) in Strabo, but often in the papyri for struggle as well as plaiting, here only in N.T.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:3 - Of wearing Of wearing ( peritheseōs ). Late and rare word (Galen, Arrian) from peritithēmi (Mat 27:28), to put around, a placing around. Ornaments of gold...

Of wearing ( peritheseōs ).

Late and rare word (Galen, Arrian) from peritithēmi (Mat 27:28), to put around, a placing around. Ornaments of gold were worn round the hair as nets and round the finger, arm, or ankle.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:3 - Or of putting on Or of putting on ( enduseōs ). Old word from enduō (to put on), here only in N.T. Peter is not forbidding the wearing of clothes and ornaments ...

Or of putting on ( enduseōs ).

Old word from enduō (to put on), here only in N.T. Peter is not forbidding the wearing of clothes and ornaments by women, but the display of finery by contrast. Cf. 1Ti 2:9-13; Isa 3:16.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:4 - But the hidden man of the heart But the hidden man of the heart ( all' ho kruptos tēs kardias anthrōpos ). Here anthrōpos is in contrast with kosmos just before. See Paul&...

But the hidden man of the heart ( all' ho kruptos tēs kardias anthrōpos ).

Here anthrōpos is in contrast with kosmos just before. See Paul’ s use of anthrōpos for the outer and old, the inner and new man (2Co 4:16; Rom 7:22; Col 3:9; Eph 3:16; Eph 4:22, Eph 4:24). See also the Jew en kruptōi (Rom 2:29) and what Jesus said about God seeing "in secret"(Mat 6:4, Mat 6:6).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:4 - In the incorruptible apparel of a meek and quiet spirit In the incorruptible apparel of a meek and quiet spirit ( en tōi aphthartōi tou hēsuchiou kai praeōs pneumatos ). No word in the Greek for "a...

In the incorruptible apparel of a meek and quiet spirit ( en tōi aphthartōi tou hēsuchiou kai praeōs pneumatos ).

No word in the Greek for "apparel"(kosmōi ). For aphthartos see note on 1Pe 1:4 and note on 1Pe 1:23. For praus see Mat 5:5; Mat 11:29. Pneuma (spirit) is here disposition or temper (Bigg), unlike any other use in the N.T. In 1Pe 3:18, 1Pe 3:19; 1Pe 4:6 it means the whole inner man as opposed to sarx or sōma , very much as psuchē is used as opposed to sōma .

Robertson: 1Pe 3:4 - Which Which ( ho ). Spirit just mentioned.

Which ( ho ).

Spirit just mentioned.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:4 - Of great price Of great price ( poluteles ). Old word (from polu and telos , cost), in N.T. only here, Mar 14:3; 1Ti 2:9.

Of great price ( poluteles ).

Old word (from polu and telos , cost), in N.T. only here, Mar 14:3; 1Ti 2:9.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:5 - Adorned themselves Adorned themselves ( ekosmoun heautas ). Imperfect active of customary action, "used to adorn themselves."Kosmeō is old verb from kosmos in the...

Adorned themselves ( ekosmoun heautas ).

Imperfect active of customary action, "used to adorn themselves."Kosmeō is old verb from kosmos in the sense in 1Pe 3:3. See Heb 11:11, Heb 11:35 for like tribute to holy women of the O.T. The participle hupotassomenai repeats 1Pe 3:1.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - As Sarah As Sarah ( hōs Sarra ).

As Sarah ( hōs Sarra ).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - Obeyed Abraham Obeyed Abraham ( hupēkouen tōi Abraam ). Imperfect active of hupakouō , "used to obey"(with dative).

Obeyed Abraham ( hupēkouen tōi Abraam ).

Imperfect active of hupakouō , "used to obey"(with dative).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - Calling him lord Calling him lord ( kurion auton kalousa ). Present active participle of kaleō . See Gen 18:12.

Calling him lord ( kurion auton kalousa ).

Present active participle of kaleō . See Gen 18:12.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - Whose children ye now are Whose children ye now are ( hēs egenēthēte tekna ). First aorist passive indicative of ginomai , "whose children ye became."

Whose children ye now are ( hēs egenēthēte tekna ).

First aorist passive indicative of ginomai , "whose children ye became."

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - If ye do well If ye do well ( agathopoiousai ). Present active feminine plural participle of agathopoieō (1Pe 2:15), "doing good."

If ye do well ( agathopoiousai ).

Present active feminine plural participle of agathopoieō (1Pe 2:15), "doing good."

Robertson: 1Pe 3:6 - And are not put in fear by any terror And are not put in fear by any terror ( kai mē phoboumenai mēdemian ptoēsin ). Free quotation from Pro 3:25, "and not fearing any terror"(cogna...

And are not put in fear by any terror ( kai mē phoboumenai mēdemian ptoēsin ).

Free quotation from Pro 3:25, "and not fearing any terror"(cognate accusative of ptoēsis , after phoboumenai , present middle participle, late and rare word from ptoeō , to terrify, as in Luk 21:9, here only in N.T.). Perhaps Peter regards Sarah’ s falsehood as the yielding to a sudden terror (Hart). Hannah could also be named along with Sarah. The women somehow do not organize "daughters of Sarah"societies.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - Ye husbands likewise Ye husbands likewise ( hoi andres homoiōs ). Probably "likewise"here refers to honouring all men (1Pe 2:17), not "likewise"of 1Pe 3:1.

Ye husbands likewise ( hoi andres homoiōs ).

Probably "likewise"here refers to honouring all men (1Pe 2:17), not "likewise"of 1Pe 3:1.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - Dwell with Dwell with ( sunoikountes ). Present active participle of sunoikeō , old verb for domestic association, here only in N.T. Used as imperative here l...

Dwell with ( sunoikountes ).

Present active participle of sunoikeō , old verb for domestic association, here only in N.T. Used as imperative here like the participle in 1Pe 2:18; 1Pe 3:1.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - According to knowledge According to knowledge ( kata gnōsin ). "With an intelligent recognition of the nature of the marriage relation"(Vincent).

According to knowledge ( kata gnōsin ).

"With an intelligent recognition of the nature of the marriage relation"(Vincent).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - Giving honour unto the woman as unto the weaker vessel Giving honour unto the woman as unto the weaker vessel ( hōs asthenesterōi skeuei tōi gunaikeiōi aponemontes timēn ). Present active partic...

Giving honour unto the woman as unto the weaker vessel ( hōs asthenesterōi skeuei tōi gunaikeiōi aponemontes timēn ).

Present active participle of aponemō , old verb, to assign, to portion out (or off), here only in N.T. Skeuos is an old and common word for vessel, furniture, utensil (Mat 12:29; 2Ti 2:20). Here both husband and wife are termed vessels or "parts of the furniture of God’ s house"(Bigg). See Paul’ s use of skeuos for ministers (2Co 4:7). Gunaikeiōi here is an adjective (female, feminine) from gunē (woman, wife). She is termed "the weaker"(tōi asthenesterōi ), not for intellectual or moral weakness, but purely for physical reasons, which the husband must recognize with due consideration for marital happiness.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - Joint-heirs of the grace of life Joint-heirs of the grace of life ( sunklēronomoi charitos zōēs ). Late double compound found in an Ephesian inscription and the papyri, in N.T....

Joint-heirs of the grace of life ( sunklēronomoi charitos zōēs ).

Late double compound found in an Ephesian inscription and the papyri, in N.T. only here, Rom 8:17; Eph 3:6; Heb 11:9. God’ s gift of life eternal belongs to woman as well as to man. In the eyes of God the wife may be superior to the husband, not merely equal.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:7 - To the end that your prayers be not hindered To the end that your prayers be not hindered ( eis to mē egkoptesthai tas proseuchas humōn ). Purpose clause with eis to and the present passiv...

To the end that your prayers be not hindered ( eis to mē egkoptesthai tas proseuchas humōn ).

Purpose clause with eis to and the present passive infinitive (with negative mē ) of egkoptō , to cut in, to interrupt, late verb (Polybius), as in Rom 15:22, etc. Very vivid to us now with our telephones and radios when people cut in on us. Proseuchas (prayers) is the accusative of general reference. Husbands surely have here cause to consider why their prayers are not answered.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Finally Finally ( to telos ). Adverbial accusative. Conclusion, not of the Epistle, but only of the addresses to various classes. No verb (este imperative,...

Finally ( to telos ).

Adverbial accusative. Conclusion, not of the Epistle, but only of the addresses to various classes. No verb (este imperative, be) here.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Likeminded Likeminded ( homophrones ). Old compound (homos , phrēn ), here only in N.T.

Likeminded ( homophrones ).

Old compound (homos , phrēn ), here only in N.T.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Compassionate Compassionate ( sumpatheis ). Old adjective (sun , paschō ), in N.T. only here and Rom 12:15. Our "sympathetic"in original sense.

Compassionate ( sumpatheis ).

Old adjective (sun , paschō ), in N.T. only here and Rom 12:15. Our "sympathetic"in original sense.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Loving as brethren Loving as brethren ( philadelphoi ). Old compound (philos , adelphos ), here only in N.T.

Loving as brethren ( philadelphoi ).

Old compound (philos , adelphos ), here only in N.T.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Tender-hearted Tender-hearted ( eusplagchnoi ). Late and rare compound (eu and splagchnon ), in Hippocrates, Apocrypha, in N.T. only here and Eph 4:32.

Tender-hearted ( eusplagchnoi ).

Late and rare compound (eu and splagchnon ), in Hippocrates, Apocrypha, in N.T. only here and Eph 4:32.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:8 - Humble minded Humble minded ( tapeinophrones ). Late compound (tapeinos , phrēn ), in Plutarch, Pro 29:23, here only in N.T.

Humble minded ( tapeinophrones ).

Late compound (tapeinos , phrēn ), in Plutarch, Pro 29:23, here only in N.T.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:9 - Not rendering evil for evil Not rendering evil for evil ( mē apodidontes kakon anti kakou ). Mē and the present active participle of apodidōmi , to give back. The same p...

Not rendering evil for evil ( mē apodidontes kakon anti kakou ).

Mē and the present active participle of apodidōmi , to give back. The same phrase in Rom 12:17 and the same idea in 1Th 5:15. Peter may have obtained it from Paul or both from Pro 17:13; Pro 20:22, "an approximation to Christ’ s repeal of the lex talionis (Mat 5:38.) which Plato first opposed among the Greeks"(Hart). Common use of anti for exchange.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:9 - Reviling for reviling Reviling for reviling ( loidorian anti loidorias ). Allusion to 1Pe 2:23 (Christ’ s own example).

Reviling for reviling ( loidorian anti loidorias ).

Allusion to 1Pe 2:23 (Christ’ s own example).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:9 - But contrariwise blessing But contrariwise blessing ( tounantion de eulogountes ). Adverbial accusative and crasis (to enantion ) of the neuter article and the adjective enan...

But contrariwise blessing ( tounantion de eulogountes ).

Adverbial accusative and crasis (to enantion ) of the neuter article and the adjective enantios (en , antios , opposite, Mat 14:24), "on the contrary."For eulogountes (present active participle of eulogeō ) see Luk 6:28; Rom 12:14 (imperative eulogeite ).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:9 - For hereunto were ye called For hereunto were ye called ( hoti eis touto eklēthēte ). See note on 1Pe 2:21 for this verb and use of eis touto (pointing to the preceding ar...

For hereunto were ye called ( hoti eis touto eklēthēte ).

See note on 1Pe 2:21 for this verb and use of eis touto (pointing to the preceding argument).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:9 - That ye should inherit a blessing That ye should inherit a blessing ( hina eulogian klēronomēsēte ). Purpose clause with hina and the first aorist active subjunctive of klēr...

That ye should inherit a blessing ( hina eulogian klēronomēsēte ).

Purpose clause with hina and the first aorist active subjunctive of klēronomeō , a plain reference to Esau, who wanted "to inherit the blessing"(Heb 12:17) after he had sold his birthright. Christians are the new Israel (both Gentiles and Jews) and are the spiritual descendants of Isaac (Gal 4:22.).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:10 - For For ( gar ). Reason for the entire exhortation in 1Pe 3:8, 1Pe 3:9 and introducing in 1Pe 3:10-12 a quotation from Psa 34:13-17 with some slight chan...

For ( gar ).

Reason for the entire exhortation in 1Pe 3:8, 1Pe 3:9 and introducing in 1Pe 3:10-12 a quotation from Psa 34:13-17 with some slight changes.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:10 - Would love life Would love life ( thelōn zōēn agapāin ). "Wishing to love life."This present life. The lxx expressions are obscure Hebraisms. The lxx has aga...

Would love life ( thelōn zōēn agapāin ).

"Wishing to love life."This present life. The lxx expressions are obscure Hebraisms. The lxx has agapōn (participle present active of agapaō , not the infinitive agapāin .

Robertson: 1Pe 3:10 - Let him refrain Let him refrain ( pausatō ). Third person singular first aorist active imperative of pauō to make stop, whereas the lxx has pauson (second pe...

Let him refrain ( pausatō ).

Third person singular first aorist active imperative of pauō to make stop, whereas the lxx has pauson (second person singular).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:10 - His tongue His tongue ( tēn glōssan ). See Jam 3:1-12.

His tongue ( tēn glōssan ).

See Jam 3:1-12.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:10 - That they speak no guile That they speak no guile ( tou mē lalēsai dolon ). Purpose clause with genitive article tou (negative mē ) and the first aorist active infin...

That they speak no guile ( tou mē lalēsai dolon ).

Purpose clause with genitive article tou (negative mē ) and the first aorist active infinitive of laleō . But it can also be explained as the ablative case with the redundant negative mē after a verb of hindering (pausatō ) like Luk 4:42. See Robertson, Grammar , p. 1061. "Let him refrain his lips from speaking guile."

Robertson: 1Pe 3:11 - Let him turn away Let him turn away ( ekklinatō ). First aorist active imperative third person singular of ekklinō , where the lxx has ekklinon (second person si...

Let him turn away ( ekklinatō ).

First aorist active imperative third person singular of ekklinō , where the lxx has ekklinon (second person singular). Old verb, in N.T. only here, Rom 3:12; Rom 16:17. Peter adapted the passage all through to his own construction and use. So as to poiēsatō (let him do) for poiēson (do thou), zētēsatō (let him seek) for zētēson (do thou seek), diōxatō (let him pursue) for diōxon (do thou pursue), all first aorist active imperatives (of poieō , zēteō , diōkō ). See Heb 12:14 for "pursuing peace."If men only did!

Robertson: 1Pe 3:12 - Upon Upon ( epi ). In the case of righteous (dikaious , in the O.T. sense like dikaion Lot in 2Pe 2:7) for their good, but in the case of men "that do e...

Upon ( epi ).

In the case of righteous (dikaious , in the O.T. sense like dikaion Lot in 2Pe 2:7) for their good, but in the case of men "that do evil"(epi poiountas kaka , "upon men doing evil things") "the face of the Lord"(prosōpon kuriou ) is not for their good, epi here approaching "against"in idea.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:13 - That will harm you That will harm you ( ho kakōsōn humas ). Future active articular participle of kakoō , old verb (from kakos , bad) as in Act 7:6, Act 7:19. Any...

That will harm you ( ho kakōsōn humas ).

Future active articular participle of kakoō , old verb (from kakos , bad) as in Act 7:6, Act 7:19. Any real hurt, either that wishes to harm you or that can harm. See the words in Isa 50:9.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:13 - If ye be If ye be ( ean genēsthe ). Rather, "if ye become"(condition of third class with ean and second aorist middle subjunctive of ginomai ).

If ye be ( ean genēsthe ).

Rather, "if ye become"(condition of third class with ean and second aorist middle subjunctive of ginomai ).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:13 - Zealous of that which is good Zealous of that which is good ( tou agathou zēlōtai ). "Zealots for the good"(objective genitive after zēlōtai (zealots, not zealous), old ...

Zealous of that which is good ( tou agathou zēlōtai ).

"Zealots for the good"(objective genitive after zēlōtai (zealots, not zealous), old word from zēloō (1Co 12:12).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:14 - But and if ye should suffer But and if ye should suffer ( all' ei kai paschoite ). "But if ye should also (or even) suffer."Condition of the fourth class with ei and the optat...

But and if ye should suffer ( all' ei kai paschoite ).

"But if ye should also (or even) suffer."Condition of the fourth class with ei and the optative (undetermined with less likelihood), a rare condition in the vernacular Koiné , since the optative was a dying mode. If matters, in spite of the prophetic note of victory in 1Pe 3:13, should come to actual suffering "for righteousness’ sake"(dia dikaiosunēn ) as in Mat 5:10 (heneken , not dia ), then "blessed"(makarioi , the very word of Jesus there which see, a word meaning "happy,"not eulogētoi ) "are ye"(not in the Greek). If the conclusion were expressed regularly, it would be eiēte an (ye would be), not este (ye are). It is interesting to note the third-class condition in 1Pe 3:13 just before the fourth-class one in 1Pe 3:14.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:14 - Fear not their fear Fear not their fear ( ton phobon autōn mē phobēthēte ). Prohibition with mē and the first aorist (ingressive) passive subjunctive of phob...

Fear not their fear ( ton phobon autōn mē phobēthēte ).

Prohibition with mē and the first aorist (ingressive) passive subjunctive of phobeomai , to fear, and the cognate accusative phobon (fear, terror). "Do not fear their threats"(Bigg). Quotation from Isa 8:12.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:14 - Neither be troubled Neither be troubled ( mēde taraxthēte ). Prohibition with mēde and the first aorist (ingressive) subjunctive of tarassō , to disturb (Mat 2...

Neither be troubled ( mēde taraxthēte ).

Prohibition with mēde and the first aorist (ingressive) subjunctive of tarassō , to disturb (Mat 2:6; Joh 12:27). Part of the same quotation. Cf. 1Pe 3:6.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - Sanctify Sanctify ( hagiasate ). First aorist active imperative of hagiazō . This instead of being afraid.

Sanctify ( hagiasate ).

First aorist active imperative of hagiazō . This instead of being afraid.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - Christ as Lord Christ as Lord ( kurion ton Christon ). Ton Christon , direct object with article and kurion predicate accusative (without article). This is the co...

Christ as Lord ( kurion ton Christon ).

Ton Christon , direct object with article and kurion predicate accusative (without article). This is the correct text, not ton theon of the Textus Receptus. An adaptation to Christ of Isa 8:13.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - Being ready always Being ready always ( hetoimoi aei ). No participle in the Greek, old adjective (Tit 3:1).

Being ready always ( hetoimoi aei ).

No participle in the Greek, old adjective (Tit 3:1).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - To give answer To give answer ( pros apologian ). "For an apology,"the old sense of apologia , an answer back, a defence (not excuse), as in Act 22:1, from apologeo...

To give answer ( pros apologian ).

"For an apology,"the old sense of apologia , an answer back, a defence (not excuse), as in Act 22:1, from apologeomai to defend (not to apologize).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - A reason concerning the hope that is in you A reason concerning the hope that is in you ( logon peri tēs en humin elpidos ). Original sense of logon (accusative of the thing with aitounti ...

A reason concerning the hope that is in you ( logon peri tēs en humin elpidos ).

Original sense of logon (accusative of the thing with aitounti with humās , accusative of the person) "concerning the in you hope."Ready with a spoken defence of the inward hope. This attitude calls for an intelligent grasp of the hope and skill in presenting it. In Athens every citizen was expected to be able to join in the discussion of state affairs.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:15 - Yet with meekness and fear Yet with meekness and fear ( alla meta prautētos kai phobou ). Of God (1Pe 2:18; 1Pe 3:2, 1Pe 3:4), not of man.

Yet with meekness and fear ( alla meta prautētos kai phobou ).

Of God (1Pe 2:18; 1Pe 3:2, 1Pe 3:4), not of man.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience Having a good conscience ( suneidēsin echontes agathēn ). Present active participle of echō . See 1Pe 2:18 for suneidēsin and 1Pe 3:21 for ...

Having a good conscience ( suneidēsin echontes agathēn ).

Present active participle of echō . See 1Pe 2:18 for suneidēsin and 1Pe 3:21 for suneidēsis agathē again ("a quasi-personification,"Hart).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:16 - That they may be put to shame That they may be put to shame ( hina kataischunthōsin ). Purpose clause with hina and the first aorist passive subjunctive of kataischunō , old...

That they may be put to shame ( hina kataischunthōsin ).

Purpose clause with hina and the first aorist passive subjunctive of kataischunō , old verb, to put to shame (Luk 13:17; 1Pe 2:6).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:16 - Wherein ye are spoken against Wherein ye are spoken against ( en hōi katalaleisthe ). Present passive indicative of katalaleō , for which see 1Pe 2:12 with en hōi also. Pe...

Wherein ye are spoken against ( en hōi katalaleisthe ).

Present passive indicative of katalaleō , for which see 1Pe 2:12 with en hōi also. Peter may be recalling (Hart) his own experience at Pentecost when the Jews first scoffed and others were cut to the heart (Act 2:13, Act 2:37).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:16 - Who revile Who revile ( hoi epēreazontes ). Articular present active participle of epēreazō , old verb (from epēreia , spiteful abuse), to insult, in N....

Who revile ( hoi epēreazontes ).

Articular present active participle of epēreazō , old verb (from epēreia , spiteful abuse), to insult, in N.T. only here and Luk 6:28.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:16 - In Christ In Christ ( en Christōi ). Paul’ s common mystical phrase that Peter has three times (here, 1Pe 5:10, 1Pe 5:14), not in John, though the idea ...

In Christ ( en Christōi ).

Paul’ s common mystical phrase that Peter has three times (here, 1Pe 5:10, 1Pe 5:14), not in John, though the idea is constantly in John. Peter here gives a new turn (cf. 1Pe 2:12) to anastrophē (manner of life). "Constantly the apostle repeats his phrases with new significance and in a new light"(Bigg).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:17 - Better Better ( kreitton ). Comparative of kratus as in 2Pe 2:21; Heb 1:4. Patient endurance not only silences calumny (1Pe 3:16), is Christlike (1Pe 3:18...

Better ( kreitton ).

Comparative of kratus as in 2Pe 2:21; Heb 1:4. Patient endurance not only silences calumny (1Pe 3:16), is Christlike (1Pe 3:18), but it has a value of its own (1Pe 3:17).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:17 - If the will of God should so will If the will of God should so will ( ei theloi to thelēma tou theou ). Condition of the fourth class again (ei - theloi ) with ei and the optati...

If the will of God should so will ( ei theloi to thelēma tou theou ).

Condition of the fourth class again (ei - theloi ) with ei and the optative. For a like pleonasm see Joh 7:17.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:17 - For well-doing than for evil-doing For well-doing than for evil-doing ( agathopoiountas ē kakopoiountas ). Accusative plural agreeing with humās understood (accusative of general...

For well-doing than for evil-doing ( agathopoiountas ē kakopoiountas ).

Accusative plural agreeing with humās understood (accusative of general reference with the infinitive paschein (to suffer) of the participles from agathopoieō (see 1Pe 2:15) and kakopoieō (Mar 3:4, and see 1Pe 2:14 for kakopoios ).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - Because Christ also died Because Christ also died ( hoti kai Christos apethanen ). So the best MSS.; later ones epathen (suffered). The example of Christ should stir us to ...

Because Christ also died ( hoti kai Christos apethanen ).

So the best MSS.; later ones epathen (suffered). The example of Christ should stir us to patient endurance.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - For sins For sins ( peri hamartiōn ). "Concerning sins"(not his, but ours, 1Pe 1:18). Peri (around, concerning) with hamartias in the regular phrase for...

For sins ( peri hamartiōn ).

"Concerning sins"(not his, but ours, 1Pe 1:18). Peri (around, concerning) with hamartias in the regular phrase for the sin offering (Lev 5:7; Lev 6:30), though huper hamartias does occur (Eze 43:25). So in the N.T. we find both peri hamartiōn (Heb 5:3) and huper hamartiōn (Heb 5:1).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - Once Once ( hapax ). Once for all (Heb 9:28), not once upon a time (pote ).

Once ( hapax ).

Once for all (Heb 9:28), not once upon a time (pote ).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - The righteous for the unrighteous The righteous for the unrighteous ( dikaios huper adikōn ). Literally, "just for unjust"(no articles). See 1Pe 2:19 for the sinlessness of Christ a...

The righteous for the unrighteous ( dikaios huper adikōn ).

Literally, "just for unjust"(no articles). See 1Pe 2:19 for the sinlessness of Christ as the one perfect offering for sin. This is what gives Christ’ s blood value. He has no sin himself. Some men today fail to perceive this point.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - That he might bring us to God That he might bring us to God ( hina hēmās prosagagēi tōi theōi ). Purpose clause with hina , with second aorist active subjunctive of pros...

That he might bring us to God ( hina hēmās prosagagēi tōi theōi ).

Purpose clause with hina , with second aorist active subjunctive of prosagō and the dative case tōi theōi . The MSS. vary between hēmās (us) and humās (you). The verb prosagō means to lead or bring to (Mat 18:24), to approach God (cf. prosagōgēn in Eph 2:18), to present us to God on the basis of his atoning death for us, which has opened the way (Rom 3:25; Heb 10:19.)

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - Being put to death in the flesh Being put to death in the flesh ( thanatōtheis men sarki ). First aorist passive participle of thanatoō , old verb (from thanatos death), to pu...

Being put to death in the flesh ( thanatōtheis men sarki ).

First aorist passive participle of thanatoō , old verb (from thanatos death), to put to death. Sarki is locative case of sarx .

Robertson: 1Pe 3:18 - But quickened in the spirit But quickened in the spirit ( zōopoiētheis de pneumati ). First aorist passive participle of zōopoieō rare (Aristotle) verb (from zōopoio...

But quickened in the spirit ( zōopoiētheis de pneumati ).

First aorist passive participle of zōopoieō rare (Aristotle) verb (from zōopoios making alive), to make alive. The participles are not antecedent to apethanen , but simultaneous with it. There is no such construction as the participle of subsequent action. The spirit of Christ did not die when his flesh did, but "was endued with new and greater powers of life"(Thayer). See 1Co 15:22 for the use of the verb for the resurrection of the body. But the use of the word pneumati (locative case) in contrast with sarki starts Peter’ s mind off in a long comparison by way of illustration that runs from 1Pe 3:19-22. The following verses have caused more controversy than anything in the Epistle.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:19 - In which also In which also ( en hōi kai ). That is, in spirit (relative referring to pneumati ). But, a number of modern scholars have followed Griesbach’...

In which also ( en hōi kai ).

That is, in spirit (relative referring to pneumati ). But, a number of modern scholars have followed Griesbach’ s conjecture that the original text was either Nōe kai (Noah also), or Enōch kai (Enoch also), or en hōi kai Enōch (in which Enoch also) which an early scribe misunderstood or omitted Enōch kai in copying (homoioteleuton ). It is allowed in Stier and Theile’ s Polyglott. It is advocated by J. Cramer in 1891, by J. Rendel Harris in The Expositor (1901), and Sidelights on N.T. Research (p. 208), by Nestle in 1902, by Moffatt’ s New Translation of the New Testament. Windisch rejects it as inconsistent with the context. There is no manuscript for the conjecture, though it would relieve the difficulty greatly. Luther admits that he does not know what Peter means. Bigg has no doubt that the event recorded took place between Christ’ s death and his resurrection and holds that Peter is alluding to Christ’ s Descensus ad Inferos in Act 2:27 (with which he compares Mat 27:52.; Luk 23:34; Eph 4:9). With this Windisch agrees. But Wohlenberg holds that Peter means that Christ in his preexistent state preached to those who rejected the preaching of Noah who are now in prison. Augustine held that Christ was in Noah when he preached. Bigg argues strongly that Christ during the time between his death and resurrection preached to those who once heard Noah (but are now in prison) and offered them another chance and not mere condemnation. If so, why did Jesus confine his preaching to this one group? So the theories run on about this passage. One can only say that it is a slim hope for those who neglect or reject Christ in this life to gamble with a possible second chance after death which rests on very precarious exegesis of a most difficult passage in Peter’ s Epistle. Accepting the text as we have, what can we make of it?

Robertson: 1Pe 3:19 - He went and preached He went and preached ( poreutheis ekēruxen ). First aorist passive (deponent) participle of poreuomai and first aorist active indicative of kēr...

He went and preached ( poreutheis ekēruxen ).

First aorist passive (deponent) participle of poreuomai and first aorist active indicative of kērussō , the verb commonly used of the preaching of Jesus. Naturally the words mean personal action by Christ "in spirit"as illustration of his "quickening"(1Pe 3:18) whether done before his death or afterwards. It is interesting to observe that, just as the relative en hōi here tells something suggested by the word pneumati (in spirit) just before, so in 1Pe 3:21 the relative ho (which) tells another illustration of the words di' hudatos (by water) just before. Peter jumps from the flood in Noah’ s time to baptism in Peter’ s time, just as he jumped backwards from Christ’ s time to Noah’ s time. He easily goes off at a word. What does he mean here by the story that illustrates Christ’ s quickening in spirit?

Robertson: 1Pe 3:19 - Unto the spirits in prison Unto the spirits in prison ( tois en phulakēi pneumasin ). The language is plain enough except that it does not make it clear whether Jesus did the...

Unto the spirits in prison ( tois en phulakēi pneumasin ).

The language is plain enough except that it does not make it clear whether Jesus did the preaching to spirits in prison at the time or to people whose spirits are now in prison, the point of doubt already discussed. The metaphorical use of en phulakēi can be illustrated by 2Pe 2:4; Jud 1:6; Rev 20:7 (the final abode of the lost). See Heb 12:23 for the use of pneumata for disembodied spirits.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Which aforetime were disobedient Which aforetime were disobedient ( apeithēsasin pote ). First aorist active participle of apeitheō (for which verb see 1Pe 3:20) in the dative ...

Which aforetime were disobedient ( apeithēsasin pote ).

First aorist active participle of apeitheō (for which verb see 1Pe 3:20) in the dative plural agreeing with pneumasin . These spirits now in prison once upon a time (pote ) were disobedient (typical rebels, Hart calls them).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Waited Waited ( apexedecheto ). Imperfect middle of the double compound apekdechomai , late verb, probably first by Paul (1Co 1:7), though in the apocryphal...

Waited ( apexedecheto ).

Imperfect middle of the double compound apekdechomai , late verb, probably first by Paul (1Co 1:7), though in the apocryphal Acta Pauli (iii) and other late writings cited by Nageli (p. 43). Perfective use of the two prepositions (apo , ek ) to wait out to the end, as for Christ’ s Second Coming (Phi 3:20). A hundred years apparently after the warning (Gen 5:32; Gen 6:3; Gen 7:6) Noah was preparing the ark and Noah as a preacher of righteousness (2Pe 2:5) forewarned the people, who disregarded it.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - While the ark was a preparing While the ark was a preparing ( kataskeuazomenēs kibōtou ). Genitive absolute with present passive participle of kataskeuazō , old compound (Ma...

While the ark was a preparing ( kataskeuazomenēs kibōtou ).

Genitive absolute with present passive participle of kataskeuazō , old compound (Mat 11:10), for kibōtos (ark) see Mat 24:38.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Wherein Wherein ( eis hēn ). "Into which"(the ark).

Wherein ( eis hēn ).

"Into which"(the ark).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - That is That is ( tout' estin ). Explanatory expression like our English idiom (Rom 10:6, etc.).

That is ( tout' estin ).

Explanatory expression like our English idiom (Rom 10:6, etc.).

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Souls Souls ( psuchai ). Persons of both sexes (living men) as in Act 2:41; Act 27:37, etc.

Souls ( psuchai ).

Persons of both sexes (living men) as in Act 2:41; Act 27:37, etc.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Were saved Were saved ( diesōthēsan ). First aorist passive indicative of diasōzō , old compound, to bring safe through as in Act 27:44.

Were saved ( diesōthēsan ).

First aorist passive indicative of diasōzō , old compound, to bring safe through as in Act 27:44.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:20 - Through water Through water ( di' hudatos ). "By means of water"as the intermediate agent, an apparent change in the use of dia in composition just before (local...

Through water ( di' hudatos ).

"By means of water"as the intermediate agent, an apparent change in the use of dia in composition just before (local use) to the instrumental use here. They came through the water in the ark and so were saved by the water in spite of the flood around them. Peter lays stress (Hart) on the water rather than on the ark (Heb 11:7) for the sake of the following illustration.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - Which also Which also ( ho kai ). Water just mentioned.

Which also ( ho kai ).

Water just mentioned.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - After a true likeness After a true likeness ( antitupon ). Water in baptism now as an anti-type of Noah’ s deliverance by water. For baptisma see note on Mat 3:7. F...

After a true likeness ( antitupon ).

Water in baptism now as an anti-type of Noah’ s deliverance by water. For baptisma see note on Mat 3:7. For antitupon see note on Heb 9:24 (only other N.T. example) where the word is used of the earthly tabernacle corresponding (antitupa ) to the heavenly, which is the pattern (tupon Heb 8:5) for the earthly. So here baptism is presented as corresponding to (prefigured by) the deliverance of Noah’ s family by water. It is only a vague parallel, but not over-fanciful.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - Doth now save you Doth now save you ( humas nun sōzei ). Simplex verb (sōzō , not the compound diasōzō ). The saving by baptism which Peter here mentions is...

Doth now save you ( humas nun sōzei ).

Simplex verb (sōzō , not the compound diasōzō ). The saving by baptism which Peter here mentions is only symbolic (a metaphor or picture as in Rom 6:2-6), not actual as Peter hastens to explain.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh ( ou sarkos apothesis rupou ). Apothesis is old word from apotithēmi (1Pe 2:1), in N.T. only her...

Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh ( ou sarkos apothesis rupou ).

Apothesis is old word from apotithēmi (1Pe 2:1), in N.T. only here and 2Pe 1:14. Rupou (genitive of rupos ) is old word (cf. ruparos , filthy, in Jam 2:2; Rev 22:11), here only in N.T. (cf. Isa 3:3; Isa 4:4). Baptism, Peter explains, does not wash away the filth of the flesh either in a literal sense, as a bath for the body, or in a metaphorical sense of the filth of the soul. No ceremonies really affect the conscience (Heb 9:13.). Peter here expressly denies baptismal remission of sin.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - But the interrogation of a good conscience toward God But the interrogation of a good conscience toward God ( alla suneidēseōs agathēs eperōtēma eis theon ). Old word from eperōtaō (to qu...

But the interrogation of a good conscience toward God ( alla suneidēseōs agathēs eperōtēma eis theon ).

Old word from eperōtaō (to question as in Mar 9:32; Mat 16:1), here only in N.T. In ancient Greek it never means answer, but only inquiry. The inscriptions of the age of the Antonines use it of the Senate’ s approval after inquiry. That may be the sense here, that is, avowal of consecration to God after inquiry, having repented and turned to God and now making this public proclamation of that fact by means of baptism (the symbol of the previous inward change of heart). Thus taken, it matters little whether eis theon (toward God) be taken with eperōtēma or suneidēseōs .

Robertson: 1Pe 3:21 - Through the resurrection of Jesus Christ Through the resurrection of Jesus Christ ( di' anastaseōs Iēsou Christou ). For baptism is a symbolic picture of the resurrection of Christ as we...

Through the resurrection of Jesus Christ ( di' anastaseōs Iēsou Christou ).

For baptism is a symbolic picture of the resurrection of Christ as well as of our own spiritual renewal (Rom 6:2-6). See 1Pe 1:3 for regeneration made possible by the resurrection of Jesus.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:22 - Having gone Having gone ( poreutheis ). First aorist (deponent) participle (not periphrastic) of poreuomai .

Having gone ( poreutheis ).

First aorist (deponent) participle (not periphrastic) of poreuomai .

Robertson: 1Pe 3:22 - Being made subject Being made subject ( hupotagentōn ). Second aorist passive participle of hupotassō (see 1Pe 2:18; 1Pe 3:1) in the genitive absolute constructio...

Being made subject ( hupotagentōn ).

Second aorist passive participle of hupotassō (see 1Pe 2:18; 1Pe 3:1) in the genitive absolute construction.

Robertson: 1Pe 3:22 - Unto him Unto him ( autōi ). Christ. See 1Co 15:28.

Unto him ( autōi ).

Christ. See 1Co 15:28.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:1 - Likewise Likewise ( ὁμοίως ) Rev., in like manner; better, because likewise in popular speech has, wrongly, the sense of also. Peter means...

Likewise ( ὁμοίως )

Rev., in like manner; better, because likewise in popular speech has, wrongly, the sense of also. Peter means in like manner with servants (1Pe 2:18).

Vincent: 1Pe 3:1 - Be in subjection Be in subjection ( ὑποτασσόμεναι ) Lit., being in subjection, or submitting yourselves; the same word which is used of the s...

Be in subjection ( ὑποτασσόμεναι )

Lit., being in subjection, or submitting yourselves; the same word which is used of the submission of servants (1Pe 2:18).

Vincent: 1Pe 3:1 - Be won Be won ( κερδηθήσονται ) Rev., be gained. The word used by Christ, Mat 18:15 : " gained thy brother."

Be won ( κερδηθήσονται )

Rev., be gained. The word used by Christ, Mat 18:15 : " gained thy brother."

Vincent: 1Pe 3:2 - While they behold While they behold ( ἐποπτεύσαντες ) See on 1Pe 2:12.

While they behold ( ἐποπτεύσαντες )

See on 1Pe 2:12.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:2 - Conversation Conversation See on 1Pe 1:15. Rev., behavior.

Conversation

See on 1Pe 1:15. Rev., behavior.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:2 - Coupled with fear Coupled with fear ( ἐν φόβῳ ) Lit., in fear.

Coupled with fear ( ἐν φόβῳ )

Lit., in fear.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:3 - Of plaiting Of plaiting ( ἐμπλοκῆς ) Only here in New Testament. Compare 1Ti 2:9. The Roman women of the day were addicted to ridiculous extravag...

Of plaiting ( ἐμπλοκῆς )

Only here in New Testament. Compare 1Ti 2:9. The Roman women of the day were addicted to ridiculous extravagance in the adornment of the hair. Juvenal (" Satire," vi.) satirizes these customs. He says: " The attendants will vote on the dressing of the hair as if a question of reputation or of life were at stake, so great is the trouble she takes in quest of beauty; with so many tiers does she lead, with so many continuous stories does she build up on high her head. She is tall as Andromache in front, behind she is shorter. You would think her another person." The hair was dyed, and secured with costly pins and with nets of gold thread. False hair and blond wigs were worn.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:3 - Putting on Putting on ( ἐνδύσεως ) Only here in New Testament. Female extravagance in dress in the days of the empire reached an alarming pitch.

Putting on ( ἐνδύσεως )

Only here in New Testament. Female extravagance in dress in the days of the empire reached an alarming pitch.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:4 - Meek Meek ( πραέος ) See on Mat 5:5.

Meek ( πραέος )

See on Mat 5:5.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:4 - Of great price Of great price ( πολυτελές ) The word used to describe costly raiment, 1Ti 2:9.

Of great price ( πολυτελές )

The word used to describe costly raiment, 1Ti 2:9.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:5 - Adorned Adorned ( ἐκόσμουν ) Imperfect tense. Were accustomed to adorn.

Adorned ( ἐκόσμουν )

Imperfect tense. Were accustomed to adorn.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:6 - Amazement Amazement ( πτόησιν ) Rev., terror. Compare the kindred verb πτοηθῆτε , be terrified, Luk 21:9; Luk 24:37; on which, see n...

Amazement ( πτόησιν )

Rev., terror. Compare the kindred verb πτοηθῆτε , be terrified, Luk 21:9; Luk 24:37; on which, see note. The word means a scare, or nervous excitem ent.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:7 - According to knowledge According to knowledge With an intelligent recognition of the nature of the marriage relation.

According to knowledge

With an intelligent recognition of the nature of the marriage relation.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:7 - The woman The woman ( τῷ γυναικείῳ ) Not a noun, however, as would appear from the ordinary rendering, but an adjective, agreeing with ...

The woman ( τῷ γυναικείῳ )

Not a noun, however, as would appear from the ordinary rendering, but an adjective, agreeing with σκεύει , vessel, as does also ἀσθενεστέρῳ , weaker. Both are attributes of vessel; the female vessel as weaker. So Rev., in margin.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:7 - Vessel Vessel ( σκεύει ) Compare 1Th 4:4. The primary idea of vessel, which is formed from the Latin vasellum , the diminutive of vas , a ...

Vessel ( σκεύει )

Compare 1Th 4:4. The primary idea of vessel, which is formed from the Latin vasellum , the diminutive of vas , a vase , is that of the receptacle which covers and contains; the case or protecting cover. Hence it is allied, etymologically, with vest, vestment, and wear. It is used in the New Testament (1) in the sense of a cup or dish (Luk 8:16; Joh 19:29; 2Ti 2:20; Rev 2:27; Rev 18:12). (2) Of the man, as containing the divine energy, or as a subject of divine mercy or wrath, and hence becoming a divine instrument. Thus Paul is a chosen vessel to bear God's name (Act 9:15). Vessels of wrath (Rom 9:22); of mercy (Rom 9:23). So of the woman, as God's instrument, along with man, for his service in the family and in society. (3) Collectively, in the plural, of all the implements of any particular economy, as a house, or a ship. Mat 12:29, goods; Act 27:17, the tackling or gear of a ship.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:7 - Giving Giving ( ἀπονέμοντες ) Only here in New Testament. The word means, literally, to portion out, and is appropriate to the husband ...

Giving ( ἀπονέμοντες )

Only here in New Testament. The word means, literally, to portion out, and is appropriate to the husband as controlling what is to be meted out to the wife.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:7 - Hindered Hindered ( ἐγκόπτεσθαι ) So A. V. and Rev., and the best texts, and the majority of commentators. The word means, literally, to k...

Hindered ( ἐγκόπτεσθαι )

So A. V. and Rev., and the best texts, and the majority of commentators. The word means, literally, to knock in; make an incision into; and hence, generally, to hinder or thwart (Gal 5:7; 1Th 2:18). Some, however, read ἐκκόπτεσθαι , to cut off or destroy.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:8 - Of one mind Of one mind ( ὁμόφρονες ) Rev., like-minded. Only here in New Testament. Compare Rom 12:16; Rom 15:5; Phi 2:2, etc. Indicating uni...

Of one mind ( ὁμόφρονες )

Rev., like-minded. Only here in New Testament. Compare Rom 12:16; Rom 15:5; Phi 2:2, etc. Indicating unity of thought and feeling. From ὁμός , one and the same, and φρήν , the mind.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:8 - Having compassion one of another Having compassion one of another ( συμπαθεῖς ) Only here in New Testament, though the kindred verb is found Heb 4:15; Heb 10:34. The r...

Having compassion one of another ( συμπαθεῖς )

Only here in New Testament, though the kindred verb is found Heb 4:15; Heb 10:34. The rendering is needlessly diffuse. Rev., much better, compassionate; sympathetic, in margin. Interchange of fellow-feeling in joy or sorrow. Our popular usage errs in limiting sympathy to sorrow.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:8 - Love as brethren Love as brethren ( φιλάδελφοι ) Rev., more strictly, loving as brethren. Only here in New Testament.

Love as brethren ( φιλάδελφοι )

Rev., more strictly, loving as brethren. Only here in New Testament.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:8 - Pitiful Pitiful ( εὔσπλαγχνοι ) Only here and Eph 4:32. Rev., better, tender-hearted. From εὖ , well, and σπλάγχνα , t...

Pitiful ( εὔσπλαγχνοι )

Only here and Eph 4:32. Rev., better, tender-hearted. From εὖ , well, and σπλάγχνα , the nobler entrails, which are regarded as the seat of the affections, and hence equivalent to our popular use of heart. The original sense has given rise to the unfortunate translation bowels in the A. V., which occurs in its literal meaning only at Act 1:18.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:8 - Courteous Courteous The A. V. has here followed the reading of the Tex. Rec., φιλόφρονες . But the best texts read ταπεινόφρονες...

Courteous

The A. V. has here followed the reading of the Tex. Rec., φιλόφρονες . But the best texts read ταπεινόφρονες , humble-minded. So Rev. This occurs nowhere else in the New Testament, though the kindred noun ταπεινοφροσύνη , humility, is found often. See on ταπεινός , lowly, notes on Mat 11:29.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:9 - Rendering evil Rendering evil, etc See Rom 12:17.

Rendering evil, etc

See Rom 12:17.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:9 - Blessing Blessing ( εὐλογοῦντες ) Not a noun governed by rendering, but a participle. Be not rendering evil, but be blessing.

Blessing ( εὐλογοῦντες )

Not a noun governed by rendering, but a participle. Be not rendering evil, but be blessing.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:10 - Will love Will love ( θέλων ἀγαπᾶν ) Not the future tense of love , but the verb to will, with the infinitive: he that desires or me...

Will love ( θέλων ἀγαπᾶν )

Not the future tense of love , but the verb to will, with the infinitive: he that desires or means to love. Rev., would love.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:11 - Eschew Eschew ( ἐκκλινάτω ) The old word eschew is from the Norman eschever , to shun or avoid. It reappears in the German scheuen , ...

Eschew ( ἐκκλινάτω )

The old word eschew is from the Norman eschever , to shun or avoid. It reappears in the German scheuen , to be startled or afraid, and in the English shy, and to shy (as a horse). The Greek word here occurs only twice elsewhere (Rom 3:12; Rom 16:17), where Rev. renders turn aside and turn away. It is compounded of ἐκ , out of, and κλίνω , to cause to bend or slope; so that the picture in the word is of one bending aside from his course at the approach of evil. Rev., turn away from.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:13 - Followers Followers ( μιμηταὶ ) Lit., imitators. But the best texts read ζηλωταὶ , zealots. So Rev., zealous.

Followers ( μιμηταὶ )

Lit., imitators. But the best texts read ζηλωταὶ , zealots. So Rev., zealous.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:14 - Blessed Blessed See on Mat 5:3.

Blessed

See on Mat 5:3.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:14 - Be troubled Be troubled ( ταραχθῆτε ) The word used of Herod's trouble (Mat 2:3); of the agitation of the pool of Bethesda (Joh 5:4); of Christ's ...

Be troubled ( ταραχθῆτε )

The word used of Herod's trouble (Mat 2:3); of the agitation of the pool of Bethesda (Joh 5:4); of Christ's troubled spirit (Joh 12:27).

Vincent: 1Pe 3:15 - Sanctify the Lord God Sanctify the Lord God The A. V. follows the Tex. Rec., reading τὸν Θεὸν , God, instead of τὸν Χριστὸν , Christ , which...

Sanctify the Lord God

The A. V. follows the Tex. Rec., reading τὸν Θεὸν , God, instead of τὸν Χριστὸν , Christ , which is the reading of the best texts. The article with Christ shows that κύριον , Lord, is to be taken predicatively. Render, therefore, as Rev., sanctify Christ ( the Christ) as Lord.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:15 - Ready to give an answer Ready to give an answer ( ἕτοιμοι πρὸς ἀπολογίαν ) Lit., ready for an answer. Answer is our word apology, not i...

Ready to give an answer ( ἕτοιμοι πρὸς ἀπολογίαν )

Lit., ready for an answer. Answer is our word apology, not in the popular sense of excuse, but in the more radical sense of de fence. So it is translated Act 22:1; Phi 1:7, Phi 1:16. Clearing of yourselves, 2Co 7:11.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:15 - Meekness Meekness See on Mat 5:5.

Meekness

See on Mat 5:5.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience Having a good conscience ( συνείδησιν ἔχοντες ἀγαθήν ) The position of the adjective shows that it is used predi...

Having a good conscience ( συνείδησιν ἔχοντες ἀγαθήν )

The position of the adjective shows that it is used predicatively: having a conscience good or unimpaired. Compare Heb 13:18, " We have a good conscience (καλὴν συνείδησιν ) . " Συνείδησις , conscience, does not occur in the gospels, unless Joh 8:1-11 be admitted into the text. Nor is it a word familiar to classical Greek. It is compounded of σύν , together with, and εἰδέναι , to know; and its fundamental idea is knowing together with one's self. Hence it denotes the consciousness which one has within himself of his own conduct as related to moral obligation; which consciousness exercises a judicial function, determining what is right or wrong, approving or condemning, urging to performance or abstinence. Hence it is not merely intellectual consciousness directed at conduct, but moral consciousness contemplating duty, testifying to moral obligation, even where God is not known; and, where there is knowledge of God and acquaintance with him, inspired and directed by that fact. A man cannot be conscious of himself without knowing himself as a moral creature. Cremer accordingly defines the word as " the consciousness man has of himself in his relation to God, manifesting itself in the form of a self-testimony, the result of the action of the spirit in the heart." And further, " conscience is, essentially, determining of the self-consciousness by the spirit as the essential principle of life. In conscience man stands face to face with himself." Conscience is, therefore, a law. Thus Bishop Butler: " Conscience does not only offer itself to show us the way we should walk in, but it likewise carries its own authority with it, that it is our natural guide, the guide assigned us by the Author of our nature; it therefore belongs to our condition of being; it is our duty to walk in that path and follow this guide." And again, " That principle by which we survey, and either approve or disapprove our own heart, temper, and actions, is not only to be considered as what is, in its turn, to have some influence, which may be said of every passion, of the lowest appetites; but likewise as being superior; as from its very nature claiming superiority over all others; insomuch that you cannot form a notion of this faculty, conscience, without taking in judgment, direction, superintendency. This is a constituent part of the idea, that is, of the faculty itself; and to preside and govern, from the very economy and constitution of man, belongs to it. Had it strength as it had right; had it power as it had manifest authority, it would absolutely govern the world" (Sermons II. and III., " On Human Nature" ).

Conscience is a faculty. The mind may " possess reason and distinguish between the true and the false, and yet be incapable of distinguishing between virtue and vice. We are entitled, therefore, to hold that the drawing of moral distinctions is not comprehended in the simple exercise of the reason. The conscience, in short, is a different faculty of the mind from the mere understanding. We must hold it to be simple and unresolvable till we fall in with a successful decomposition of it into its elements. In the absence of any such decomposition we hold that there are no simpler elements in the human mind which will yield us the ideas of the morally good and evil, of moral obligation and guilt, of merit and demerit. Compound and decompound all other ideas as you please, associate them together as you may, they will never give us the ideas referred to, so peculiar and full of meaning, without a faculty implanted in the mind for this very purpose" (McCosh, " Divine Government, Physical and Moral" ).

Conscience is a sentiment: i.e., it contains and implies conscious emotions which arise on the discernment of an object as good or bad. The judgment formed by conscience awakens sensibility. When the judicial faculty pronounces a thing to be lovable, it awakens love. When it pronounces it to be noble or honorable, it awakens respect and admiration. When it pronounces it to be cruel or vile, it awakens disgust and abhorrence.

In scripture we are to view conscience, as Bishop Ellicott remarks, not in its abstract nature, but in its practical manifestations. Hence it may be weak (1Co 8:7, 1Co 8:12), unauthoritative, and awakening only the feeblest emotion. It may be evil or defiled (Heb 10:22; Tit 1:15), through consciousness of evil practice. It may be seared (1Ti 4:2), branded by its own testimony to evil practice, hardened and insensible to the appeal of good. On the other hand, it may be pure (2Ti 1:3), unveiled, and giving honest and clear moral testimony. It may be void of offence (Act 24:16), unconscious of evil intent or act; good, as here, or honorable (Heb 13:18). The expression and the idea, in the full Christian sense, are foreign to the Old Testament, where the testimony to the character of moral action and character is borne by external revelation rather than by the inward moral consciousness.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:16 - Falsely accuse Falsely accuse ( ἐπηρεάζοντες ) Compare Luk 6:28; the only other passage where the word occurs, Mat 5:44, being rejected from the...

Falsely accuse ( ἐπηρεάζοντες )

Compare Luk 6:28; the only other passage where the word occurs, Mat 5:44, being rejected from the best texts. The word means to threaten abusively; to act despitefully. Rev., revile.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:17 - If the will of God be so If the will of God be so ( εἰ θέλοι τὸ θέλημα τοῦ Θεοῦ ) More literally, as Rev., preserving the play upon the ...

If the will of God be so ( εἰ θέλοι τὸ θέλημα τοῦ Θεοῦ )

More literally, as Rev., preserving the play upon the word will, if the will of God should so will.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:18 - The just for the unjust The just for the unjust But the Greek without the article is more graphic: just for unjust.

The just for the unjust

But the Greek without the article is more graphic: just for unjust.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:18 - In the flesh In the flesh The Greek omits the article. Read in flesh , the material form assumed in his incarnation.

In the flesh

The Greek omits the article. Read in flesh , the material form assumed in his incarnation.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:18 - In the spirit In the spirit Also without the article, in spirit; not as A. V ., by the Spirit, meaning the Holy Ghost, but referring to his spiritual, incor...

In the spirit

Also without the article, in spirit; not as A. V ., by the Spirit, meaning the Holy Ghost, but referring to his spiritual, incorporeal life. The words connect themselves with the death-cry on the cross: " Father, into thy hands I commend my spirit." Huther observes, " Flesh is that side of the man's being by which he belongs to earth, is therefore a creature of earth, and accordingly perishable like everything earthy. Spirit, on the other hand, is that side of his being according to which he belongs to a supernal sphere of being, and is therefore not merely a creature of earth, and is destined to an immortal existence."

Thus we must be careful and not understand spirit here of the Spirit of God, as distinguished from the flesh of Christ, but of the spiritual nature of Christ; " the higher spiritual nature which belonged to the integrity of his humanity" (Cook).

Vincent: 1Pe 3:19 - By which By which ( ἐν ᾧ ) Wrong. Rev., correctly, in which in the spiritual form of life; in the disembodied spirit.

By which ( ἐν ᾧ )

Wrong. Rev., correctly, in which in the spiritual form of life; in the disembodied spirit.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:19 - Went and preached Went and preached ( πορευθεὶς ἐκήρυξεν ) The word went, employed as usual of a personal act; and preached, in its or...

Went and preached ( πορευθεὶς ἐκήρυξεν )

The word went, employed as usual of a personal act; and preached, in its ordinary New-Testament sense of proclaiming the Gospel.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:19 - To the spirits To the spirits ( πνεύμασιν ) As in Heb 12:23, of disembodied spirits, though the word ψυχαὶ , souls, is used elsewhere (Rev 6:...

To the spirits ( πνεύμασιν )

As in Heb 12:23, of disembodied spirits, though the word ψυχαὶ , souls, is used elsewhere (Rev 6:9; Rev 20:4).

Vincent: 1Pe 3:19 - In prison In prison ( ἐν φυλακῇ ) Authorities differ, some explaining by 2Pe 2:4; Jud 1:6; Rev 20:7, as the final abode of the lost. Exceptin...

In prison ( ἐν φυλακῇ )

Authorities differ, some explaining by 2Pe 2:4; Jud 1:6; Rev 20:7, as the final abode of the lost. Excepting in the last passage, the word occurs nowhere else in the New Testament in a metaphorical sense. It is often translated watch (Mat 14:25; Luk 2:8); hold and cage (Rev 18:2). Others explain as Hades, the kingdom of the dead generally.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:20 - In which In which ( εἰς ἣν ) Lit., into which. A pregnant construction; into which they were gathered, and in which they were saved.

In which ( εἰς ἣν )

Lit., into which. A pregnant construction; into which they were gathered, and in which they were saved.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:20 - By water By water ( διὰ ) Rev., through. Some take this as instrumental, by means of water; others as local, by passing through the water, or b...

By water ( διὰ )

Rev., through. Some take this as instrumental, by means of water; others as local, by passing through the water, or being brought safely through the water into the ark. Rev., in margin, were brought safely through water.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:21 - The like figure whereunto The like figure whereunto Following a rejected reading, ᾧ , to which; so that the literal rendering would be the antitype to which. Re...

The like figure whereunto

Following a rejected reading, ᾧ , to which; so that the literal rendering would be the antitype to which. Read ὃ ἀντίτυπον , which, the antitype or as an antitype; i.e., which water, being the antitype of that water of the flood, doth now save you, even baptism. Rev., which, after a true likeness doth now, etc. Ἀντίτυπον , figure, or anti-type, is from ἀντί , over against, and τύπος , a blow. Hence, originally, repelling a blow: a blow against a blow; a counter-blow. So of an echo or of the reflection of light; then a correspondence, as of a stamp to the die, as here. The word occurs only once elsewhere, Heb 9:24 : " the figures of the true."

Vincent: 1Pe 3:21 - Putting away Putting away ( ἀπόθεσις ) Peculiar to Peter. Here and 2Pe 1:14.

Putting away ( ἀπόθεσις )

Peculiar to Peter. Here and 2Pe 1:14.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:21 - Filth Filth ( ῥύπου ) Only here in New Testament. In classical Greek signifying especially dry dirt, as on the person.

Filth ( ῥύπου )

Only here in New Testament. In classical Greek signifying especially dry dirt, as on the person.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:21 - Answer Answer ( ἐπερώτημα ) Only here in New Testament. In classical Greek the word means a question and nothing else. The meaning here i...

Answer ( ἐπερώτημα )

Only here in New Testament. In classical Greek the word means a question and nothing else. The meaning here is much disputed, and can hardly be settled satisfactorily. The rendering answer has no warrant. The meaning seems to be (as Alford), " the seeking after God of a good and pure conscience, which is the aim and end of the Christian baptismal life." So Lange: " The thing asked may be conceived as follows: 'How shall I rid myself of an evil conscience? Wilt thou, most holy God, again accept me, a sinner? Wilt thou, Lord Jesus, grant me the communion of thy death and life? Wilt thou, O Holy Spirit, assure me of grace and adoption, and dwell in my heart?' To these questions the triune Jehovah answers in baptism, 'Yea!' Now is laid the solid foundation for a good conscience. The conscience is not only purified from its guilt, but it receives new vital power by means of the resurrection of Jesus Christ."

This is the sense of ἐπερωτᾷν εἰς , in the only place where it occurs in scripture, 2 Samuel 11:7 (Sept.): " David asked of him how Joab did (ἐπερώτησεν εἰς εἰρήνην Ἰωάβ ) . " Lit., with reference to the peace of Joab. Rev. renders, the interrogation, and puts inquiry, appeal, in margin.

Vincent: 1Pe 3:22 - Gone into heaven Gone into heaven Perhaps with the scene of the ascension in Peter's mind.

Gone into heaven

Perhaps with the scene of the ascension in Peter's mind.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:1 - If any He speaks tenderly.

He speaks tenderly.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:1 - Won Gained over to Christ.

Gained over to Christ.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:2 - -- Joined with a loving fear of displeasing them.

Joined with a loving fear of displeasing them.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:3 - -- Three things are here expressly forbidden: curling the hair, wearing gold, (by way of ornament,) and putting on costly or gay apparel. These, therefor...

Three things are here expressly forbidden: curling the hair, wearing gold, (by way of ornament,) and putting on costly or gay apparel. These, therefore, ought never to be allowed, much less defended, by Christians.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:4 - The hidden man of the heart Complete inward holiness, which implies a meek and quiet spirit. A meek spirit gives no trouble willingly to any: a quiet spirit bears all wrongs with...

Complete inward holiness, which implies a meek and quiet spirit. A meek spirit gives no trouble willingly to any: a quiet spirit bears all wrongs without being troubled.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:4 - In the sight of God Who looks at the heart. All superfluity of dress contributes more to pride and anger than is generally supposed. The apostle seems to have his eye to ...

Who looks at the heart. All superfluity of dress contributes more to pride and anger than is generally supposed. The apostle seems to have his eye to this by substituting meekness and quietness in the room of the ornaments he forbids. "I do not regard these things," is often said by those whose hearts are wrapped up in them: but offer to take them away, and you touch the very idol of their soul. Some, indeed only dress elegantly that they may be looked on; that is, they squander away their Lord's talent to gain applause: thus making sin to beget sin, and then plead one in excuse of the other.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:5 - -- The adorning of those holy women, who trusted in God, and therefore did not act thus from servile fear, was, Their meek subjection to their husbands: ...

The adorning of those holy women, who trusted in God, and therefore did not act thus from servile fear, was, Their meek subjection to their husbands: Their quiet spirit, "not afraid," or amazed: and Their unblamable behaviour, "doing" all things "well."

Wesley: 1Pe 3:6 - Whose children ye are In a spiritual as well as natural sense, and entitled to the same inheritance, while ye discharge your conjugal duties, not out of fear, but for consc...

In a spiritual as well as natural sense, and entitled to the same inheritance, while ye discharge your conjugal duties, not out of fear, but for conscience' sake. Gen 18:12.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:7 - Dwell with the woman according to knowledge Knowing they are weak, and therefore to be used with all tenderness. Yet do not despise them for this, but give them honour - Both in heart, in word, ...

Knowing they are weak, and therefore to be used with all tenderness. Yet do not despise them for this, but give them honour - Both in heart, in word, and in action; as those who are called to be joint - heirs of that eternal life which ye and they hope to receive by the free grace of God.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:7 - That your prayers be not hindered On the one part or the other. All sin hinders prayer; particularly anger. Anything at which we are angry is never more apt to come into our mind than ...

On the one part or the other. All sin hinders prayer; particularly anger. Anything at which we are angry is never more apt to come into our mind than when we are at prayer; and those who do not forgive will find no forgiveness from God.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:8 - Finally This part of the epistle reaches to 1Pe 4:11. The apostle seems to have added the rest afterwards.

This part of the epistle reaches to 1Pe 4:11. The apostle seems to have added the rest afterwards.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:8 - Sympathizing Rejoicing and sorrowing together. Love all believers as brethren.

Rejoicing and sorrowing together. Love all believers as brethren.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:8 - Be pitiful Toward the afflicted.

Toward the afflicted.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:8 - Be courteous To all men. Courtesy is such a behaviour toward equals and inferiors as shows respect mixed with love.

To all men. Courtesy is such a behaviour toward equals and inferiors as shows respect mixed with love.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:9 - Ye are called to inherit a blessing Therefore their railing cannot hurt you; and, by blessing them, you imitate God, who blesses you.

Therefore their railing cannot hurt you; and, by blessing them, you imitate God, who blesses you.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:10 - For he that desireth to love life, and to see good days That would make life amiable and desirable. Psa 34:12, &c.

That would make life amiable and desirable. Psa 34:12, &c.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:11 - Let him seek To live peaceably with all men.

To live peaceably with all men.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:11 - And pursue it Even when it seems to flee from him.

Even when it seems to flee from him.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:12 - The eyes of the Lord are over the righteous For good. Anger appears in the whole face; love, chiefly in the eyes.

For good. Anger appears in the whole face; love, chiefly in the eyes.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:13 - Who is he that will harm you None can.

None can.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:14 - But if ye should suffer This is no harm to you, but a good.

This is no harm to you, but a good.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:14 - Fear ye not their fear The very words of the Septuagint, Isa 8:12-13. Let not that fear be in you which the wicked feel.

The very words of the Septuagint, Isa 8:12-13. Let not that fear be in you which the wicked feel.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:15 - But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts Have an holy fear, and a full trust in his wise providence.

Have an holy fear, and a full trust in his wise providence.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:15 - The hope Of eternal life.

Of eternal life.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:15 - With meekness For anger would hurt your cause as well as your soul.

For anger would hurt your cause as well as your soul.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:15 - And fear A filial fear of offending God, and a jealousy over yourselves, lest ye speak amiss.

A filial fear of offending God, and a jealousy over yourselves, lest ye speak amiss.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience So much the more beware of anger, to which the very consciousness of your innocence may betray you. Join with a good conscience meekness and fear, and...

So much the more beware of anger, to which the very consciousness of your innocence may betray you. Join with a good conscience meekness and fear, and you obtain a complete victory.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:16 - Your good conversation in Christ That is, which flows from faith in him.

That is, which flows from faith in him.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:17 - -- It is infinitely better, if it be the will of God, ye should suffer. His permissive will appears from his providence.

It is infinitely better, if it be the will of God, ye should suffer. His permissive will appears from his providence.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - For This is undoubtedly best, whereby we are most conformed to Christ.

This is undoubtedly best, whereby we are most conformed to Christ.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - Now Christ suffered once To suffer no more.

To suffer no more.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - For sins Not his own, but ours.

Not his own, but ours.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - The just for the unjust The word signifies, not only them who have wronged their neighbours, but those who have transgressed any of the commands of God; as the preceding word...

The word signifies, not only them who have wronged their neighbours, but those who have transgressed any of the commands of God; as the preceding word, just, denotes a person who has fulfilled, not barely social duties, but all kind of righteousness.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - That he might bring us to God Now to his gracious favour, hereafter to his blissful presence, by the same steps of suffering and of glory.

Now to his gracious favour, hereafter to his blissful presence, by the same steps of suffering and of glory.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - Being put to death in the flesh As man.

As man.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:18 - But raised to life by the Spirit Both by his own divine power, and by the power of the Holy Ghost.

Both by his own divine power, and by the power of the Holy Ghost.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:19 - By which Spirit he preached Through the ministry of Noah.

Through the ministry of Noah.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:19 - To the spirits in prison The unholy men before the flood, who were then reserved by the justice of God, as in a prison, till he executed the sentence upon them all; and are no...

The unholy men before the flood, who were then reserved by the justice of God, as in a prison, till he executed the sentence upon them all; and are now also reserved to the judgment of the great day.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:20 - When the longsuffering of God waited For an hundred and twenty years; all the time the ark was preparing: during which Noah warned them all to flee from the wrath to come.

For an hundred and twenty years; all the time the ark was preparing: during which Noah warned them all to flee from the wrath to come.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:21 - The antitype whereof The thing typified by the ark, even baptism, now saveth us - That is, through the water of baptism we are saved from the sin which overwhelms the worl...

The thing typified by the ark, even baptism, now saveth us - That is, through the water of baptism we are saved from the sin which overwhelms the world as a flood: not, indeed, the bare outward sign, but the inward grace; a divine consciousness that both our persons and our actions are accepted through him who died and rose again for us.

Wesley: 1Pe 3:22 - Angels and authorities and powers That is, all orders both of angels and men.

That is, all orders both of angels and men.

JFB: 1Pe 3:1 - Likewise Greek, "In like manner," as "servants" in their sphere; compare the reason of the woman's subjection, 1Co 11:8-10; 1Ti 2:11-14.

Greek, "In like manner," as "servants" in their sphere; compare the reason of the woman's subjection, 1Co 11:8-10; 1Ti 2:11-14.

JFB: 1Pe 3:1 - your own Enforcing the obligation: it is not strangers ye are required to be subject to. Every time that obedience is enjoined upon women to their husbands, th...

Enforcing the obligation: it is not strangers ye are required to be subject to. Every time that obedience is enjoined upon women to their husbands, the Greek, "idios," "one's own peculiarly," is used, while the wives of men are designated only by heauton, "of themselves." Feeling the need of leaning on one stronger than herself, the wife (especially if joined to an unbeliever) might be tempted, though only spiritually, to enter into that relation with another in which she ought to stand to "her own spouse (1Co 14:34-35, "Let them ask their own [idious] husbands at home"); an attachment to the person of the teacher might thus spring up, which, without being in the common sense spiritual adultery, would still weaken in its spiritual basis the married relation [STEIGER].

JFB: 1Pe 3:1 - that, if Greek, "that even if." Even if you have a husband that obeys not the word (that is, is an unbeliever).

Greek, "that even if." Even if you have a husband that obeys not the word (that is, is an unbeliever).

JFB: 1Pe 3:1 - without the word Independently of hearing the word preached, the usual way of faith coming. But BENGEL, "without word," that is, without direct Gospel discourse of the...

Independently of hearing the word preached, the usual way of faith coming. But BENGEL, "without word," that is, without direct Gospel discourse of the wives, "they may (literally, in oldest manuscripts, 'shall,' which marks the almost objective certainty of the result) be won" indirectly. "Unspoken acting is more powerful than unperformed speaking" [œCUMENIUS]. "A soul converted is gained to itself, to the pastor, wife, or husband, who sought it, and to Jesus Christ; added to His treasury who thought not His own precious blood too dear to lay out for this gain" [LEIGHTON]. "The discreet wife would choose first of all to persuade her husband to share with her in the things which lead to blessedness; but if this be impossible, let her then alone diligently press after virtue, in all things obeying him so as to do nothing at any time against his will, except in such things as are essential to virtue and salvation" [CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA].

JFB: 1Pe 3:2 - behold On narrowly looking into it, literally, "having closely observed."

On narrowly looking into it, literally, "having closely observed."

JFB: 1Pe 3:2 - chaste Pure, spotless, free from all impurity.

Pure, spotless, free from all impurity.

JFB: 1Pe 3:2 - fear Reverential, towards your husbands. Scrupulously pure, as opposed to the noisy, ambitious character of worldly women.

Reverential, towards your husbands. Scrupulously pure, as opposed to the noisy, ambitious character of worldly women.

JFB: 1Pe 3:3 - -- Literally, "To whom let there belong (namely, as their peculiar ornament) not the outward adornment (usual in the sex which first, by the fall, brough...

Literally, "To whom let there belong (namely, as their peculiar ornament) not the outward adornment (usual in the sex which first, by the fall, brought in the need of covering, Note, see on 1Pe 5:5) of," &c.

JFB: 1Pe 3:3 - plaiting Artificial braiding, in order to attract admiration.

Artificial braiding, in order to attract admiration.

JFB: 1Pe 3:3 - wearing Literally, "putting round," namely, the head, as a diadem--the arm, as a bracelet--the finger, as rings.

Literally, "putting round," namely, the head, as a diadem--the arm, as a bracelet--the finger, as rings.

JFB: 1Pe 3:3 - apparel Showy and costly. "Have the blush of modesty on thy face instead of paint, and moral worth and discretion instead of gold and emeralds" [MELISSA].

Showy and costly. "Have the blush of modesty on thy face instead of paint, and moral worth and discretion instead of gold and emeralds" [MELISSA].

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - But "Rather." The "outward adornment" of jewelry, &c., is forbidden, in so far as woman loves such things, not in so far as she uses them from a sense of ...

"Rather." The "outward adornment" of jewelry, &c., is forbidden, in so far as woman loves such things, not in so far as she uses them from a sense of propriety, and does not abuse them. Singularity mostly comes from pride and throws needless hindrances to religion in the way of others. Under costly attire there may be a humble mind. "Great is he who uses his earthenware as if it were plate; not less great is he who uses his silver as if it were earthenware" [SENECA in ALFORD].

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - hidden Inner man, which the Christian instinctively hides from public view.

Inner man, which the Christian instinctively hides from public view.

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - of the heart Consisting in the heart regenerated and adorned by the Spirit. This "inner man of the heart" is the subject of the verb "be," 1Pe 3:3, Greek: "Of whom...

Consisting in the heart regenerated and adorned by the Spirit. This "inner man of the heart" is the subject of the verb "be," 1Pe 3:3, Greek: "Of whom let the inner man be," namely, the distinction or adornment.

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - in that Consisting or standing in that as its element.

Consisting or standing in that as its element.

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - not corruptible Not transitory, nor tainted with corruption, as all earthly adornments.

Not transitory, nor tainted with corruption, as all earthly adornments.

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - meek and quiet Meek, not creating disturbances: quiet, bearing with tranquillity the disturbances caused by others. Meek in affections and feelings; quiet in words, ...

Meek, not creating disturbances: quiet, bearing with tranquillity the disturbances caused by others. Meek in affections and feelings; quiet in words, countenance, and actions [BENGEL].

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - in the sight of God Who looks to inward, not merely outward things.

Who looks to inward, not merely outward things.

JFB: 1Pe 3:4 - of great price The results of redemption should correspond to its costly price (1Pe 1:19).

The results of redemption should correspond to its costly price (1Pe 1:19).

JFB: 1Pe 3:5 - after this manner With the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit (compare the portrait of the godly wife, Pro. 31:10-31).

With the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit (compare the portrait of the godly wife, Pro. 31:10-31).

JFB: 1Pe 3:5 - trusted Greek, "hoped." "Holy" is explained by "hoped in (so as to be 'united to,' Greek) God." Hope in God is the spring of true holiness [BENGEL].

Greek, "hoped." "Holy" is explained by "hoped in (so as to be 'united to,' Greek) God." Hope in God is the spring of true holiness [BENGEL].

JFB: 1Pe 3:5 - in subjection Their ornament consisted in their subordination. Vanity was forbidden (1Pe 3:3) as being contrary to female subjection.

Their ornament consisted in their subordination. Vanity was forbidden (1Pe 3:3) as being contrary to female subjection.

JFB: 1Pe 3:6 - Sara An example of faith.

An example of faith.

JFB: 1Pe 3:6 - calling him lord (Gen 18:12).

JFB: 1Pe 3:6 - ye are Greek, "ye have become": "children" of Abraham and Sara by faith, whereas ye were Gentile aliens from the covenant.

Greek, "ye have become": "children" of Abraham and Sara by faith, whereas ye were Gentile aliens from the covenant.

JFB: 1Pe 3:6 - afraid with any amazement Greek, "fluttering alarm," "consternation." Act well, and be not thrown into sudden panic, as weak females are apt to be, by any opposition from witho...

Greek, "fluttering alarm," "consternation." Act well, and be not thrown into sudden panic, as weak females are apt to be, by any opposition from without. BENGEL translates, "Not afraid OF any fluttering terror coming from without" (1Pe 3:13-16). So the Septuagint, Pro 3:25 uses the same Greek word, which Peter probably refers to. Anger assails men; fear, women. You need fear no man in doing what is right: not thrown into fluttering agitation by any sudden outbreak of temper on the part of your unbelieving husbands, while you do well.

JFB: 1Pe 3:7 - dwell Greek, "dwelling": connected with the verb, 1Pe 2:17, "Honor all."

Greek, "dwelling": connected with the verb, 1Pe 2:17, "Honor all."

JFB: 1Pe 3:7 - knowledge Christian knowledge: appreciating the due relation of the sexes in the design of God, and acting with tenderness and forbearance accordingly: wisely: ...

Christian knowledge: appreciating the due relation of the sexes in the design of God, and acting with tenderness and forbearance accordingly: wisely: with wise consideration.

JFB: 1Pe 3:7 - them . . . giving honour to the wife Translate and punctuate the Greek rather, "dwelling according to knowledge with the female (Greek adjective, qualifying 'vessel'; not as English Versi...

Translate and punctuate the Greek rather, "dwelling according to knowledge with the female (Greek adjective, qualifying 'vessel'; not as English Version, a noun) as with the weaker vessel (see on 1Th 4:4. Both husband and wife are vessels in God's hand, and of God's making, to fulfil His gracious purposes. Both weak, the woman the weaker. The sense of his own weakness, and that she, like himself, is God's vessel and fabric, ought to lead him to act with tender and wise consideration towards her who is the weaker fabric), giving (literally, 'assigning,' 'apportioning') honor as being also (besides being man and wife) heirs together," &c.; or, as the Vatican manuscript reads, as to those who are also (besides being your wives) fellow heirs." (The reason why the man should give honor to the woman is, because God gives honor to both as fellow heirs; compare the same argument, 1Pe 3:9). He does not take into account the case of an unbelieving wife, as she might yet believe.

JFB: 1Pe 3:7 - grace of life God's gracious gift of life (1Pe 1:4, 1Pe 1:13).

God's gracious gift of life (1Pe 1:4, 1Pe 1:13).

JFB: 1Pe 3:7 - that your prayers be not hindered By dissensions, which prevent united prayer, on which depends the blessing.

By dissensions, which prevent united prayer, on which depends the blessing.

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - -- General summary of relative duty, after having detailed particular duties from 1Pe 2:18.

General summary of relative duty, after having detailed particular duties from 1Pe 2:18.

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - of one mind As to the faith.

As to the faith.

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - having compassion one of another Greek, "sympathizing" in the joy and sorrow of others.

Greek, "sympathizing" in the joy and sorrow of others.

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - love as brethren Greek, "loving the brethren."

Greek, "loving the brethren."

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - pitiful Towards the afflicted.

Towards the afflicted.

JFB: 1Pe 3:8 - courteous Genuine Christian politeness; not the tinsel of the world's politeness; stamped with unfeigned love on one side, and humility on the other. But the ol...

Genuine Christian politeness; not the tinsel of the world's politeness; stamped with unfeigned love on one side, and humility on the other. But the oldest manuscripts read, "humble-minded." It is slightly different from "humble," in that it marks a conscious effort to be truly humble.

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - evil In deed.

In deed.

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - railing In word.

In word.

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - blessing Your revilers; participle, not a noun after "rendering."

Your revilers; participle, not a noun after "rendering."

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - knowing that The oldest manuscripts read merely, "because."

The oldest manuscripts read merely, "because."

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - are Greek, "were called."

Greek, "were called."

JFB: 1Pe 3:9 - inherit a blessing Not only passive, but also active; receiving spiritual blessing from God by faith, and in your turn blessing others from love [GERHARD in ALFORD]. "It...

Not only passive, but also active; receiving spiritual blessing from God by faith, and in your turn blessing others from love [GERHARD in ALFORD]. "It is not in order to inherit a blessing that we must bless, but because our portion is blessing." No railing can injure you (1Pe 3:13). Imitate God who "blesses" you. The first fruits of His blessing for eternity are enjoyed by the righteous even now (1Pe 3:10) [BENGEL].

JFB: 1Pe 3:10 - will love Greek, "wishes to love." He who loves life (present and eternal), and desires to continue to do so, not involving himself in troubles which will make ...

Greek, "wishes to love." He who loves life (present and eternal), and desires to continue to do so, not involving himself in troubles which will make this life a burden, and cause him to forfeit eternal life. Peter confirms his exhortation, 1Pe 3:9, by Psa 34:12-16.

JFB: 1Pe 3:10 - refrain Curb, literally, "cause to cease"; implying that our natural inclination and custom is to speak evil. "Men commonly think that they would be exposed t...

Curb, literally, "cause to cease"; implying that our natural inclination and custom is to speak evil. "Men commonly think that they would be exposed to the wantonness of their enemies if they did not strenuously vindicate their rights. But the Spirit promises a life of blessedness to none but those who are gentle and patient of evils" [CALVIN].

JFB: 1Pe 3:10 - evil . . . guile First he warns against sins of the tongue, evil-speaking, and deceitful, double-tongued speaking; next, against acts of injury to one's neighbor.

First he warns against sins of the tongue, evil-speaking, and deceitful, double-tongued speaking; next, against acts of injury to one's neighbor.

JFB: 1Pe 3:11 - -- In oldest manuscripts, Greek, "Moreover (besides his words, in acts), let him."

In oldest manuscripts, Greek, "Moreover (besides his words, in acts), let him."

JFB: 1Pe 3:11 - eschew "turn from."

"turn from."

JFB: 1Pe 3:11 - ensue Pursue as a thing hard to attain, and that flees from one in this troublesome world.

Pursue as a thing hard to attain, and that flees from one in this troublesome world.

JFB: 1Pe 3:12 - -- Ground of the promised present and eternal life of blessedness to the meek (1Pe 3:10). The Lord's eyes are ever over them for good.

Ground of the promised present and eternal life of blessedness to the meek (1Pe 3:10). The Lord's eyes are ever over them for good.

JFB: 1Pe 3:12 - ears . . . unto their prayers (1Jo 5:14-15).

JFB: 1Pe 3:12 - face . . . against The eyes imply favorable regard; the face of the Lord upon (not as English Version, "against") them that do evil, implies that He narrowly observes th...

The eyes imply favorable regard; the face of the Lord upon (not as English Version, "against") them that do evil, implies that He narrowly observes them, so as not to let them really and lastingly hurt His people (compare 1Pe 3:13).

JFB: 1Pe 3:13 - who . . . will harm you This fearless confidence in God's protection from harm, Christ, the Head, in His sufferings realized; so His members.

This fearless confidence in God's protection from harm, Christ, the Head, in His sufferings realized; so His members.

JFB: 1Pe 3:13 - if ye be Greek, "if ye have become."

Greek, "if ye have become."

JFB: 1Pe 3:13 - followers The oldest manuscripts read "emulous," "zealous of" (Tit 2:14).

The oldest manuscripts read "emulous," "zealous of" (Tit 2:14).

JFB: 1Pe 3:13 - good The contrast in Greek is, "Who will do you evil, if ye be zealous of good?"

The contrast in Greek is, "Who will do you evil, if ye be zealous of good?"

JFB: 1Pe 3:14 - But and if "But if even." "The promises of this life extend only so far as it is expedient for us that they should be fulfilled" [CALVIN]. So he proceeds to stat...

"But if even." "The promises of this life extend only so far as it is expedient for us that they should be fulfilled" [CALVIN]. So he proceeds to state the exceptions to the promise (1Pe 3:10), and how the truly wise will behave in such exceptional cases. "If ye should suffer"; if it should so happen; "suffer," a milder word than harm.

JFB: 1Pe 3:14 - for righteousness "not the suffering, but the cause for which one suffers, makes the martyr" [AUGUSTINE].

"not the suffering, but the cause for which one suffers, makes the martyr" [AUGUSTINE].

JFB: 1Pe 3:14 - happy Not even can suffering take away your blessedness, but rather promotes it.

Not even can suffering take away your blessedness, but rather promotes it.

JFB: 1Pe 3:14 - and Greek, "but." Do not impair your blessing (1Pe 3:9) by fearing man's terror in your times of adversity. Literally, "Be not terrified with their terror...

Greek, "but." Do not impair your blessing (1Pe 3:9) by fearing man's terror in your times of adversity. Literally, "Be not terrified with their terror," that is, with that which they try to strike into you, and which strikes themselves when in adversity. This verse and 1Pe 3:15 is quoted from Isa 8:12-13. God alone is to be feared; he that fears God has none else to fear.

JFB: 1Pe 3:14 - neither be troubled The threat of the law, Lev 26:36; Deu 28:65-66; in contrast to which the Gospel gives the believer a heart assured of God's favor, and therefore unruf...

The threat of the law, Lev 26:36; Deu 28:65-66; in contrast to which the Gospel gives the believer a heart assured of God's favor, and therefore unruffled, amidst all adversities. Not only be not afraid, but be not even agitated.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - sanctify Hallow; honor as holy, enshrining Him in your hearts. So in the Lord's Prayer, Mat 6:9. God's holiness is thus glorified in our hearts as the dwelling...

Hallow; honor as holy, enshrining Him in your hearts. So in the Lord's Prayer, Mat 6:9. God's holiness is thus glorified in our hearts as the dwelling-place of His Spirit.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - the Lord God The oldest manuscripts read "Christ." Translate, "Sanctify Christ as Lord."

The oldest manuscripts read "Christ." Translate, "Sanctify Christ as Lord."

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - and Greek, "but," or "moreover." Besides this inward sanctification of God in the heart, be also ready always to give, &c.

Greek, "but," or "moreover." Besides this inward sanctification of God in the heart, be also ready always to give, &c.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - answer An apologetic answer defending your faith.

An apologetic answer defending your faith.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - to every man that asketh you The last words limit the universality of the "always"; not to a roller, but to everyone among the heathen who inquires honestly.

The last words limit the universality of the "always"; not to a roller, but to everyone among the heathen who inquires honestly.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - a reason A reasonable account. This refutes Rome's dogma, "I believe it, because the Church believes it." Credulity is believing without evidence; faith is bel...

A reasonable account. This refutes Rome's dogma, "I believe it, because the Church believes it." Credulity is believing without evidence; faith is believing on evidence. There is no repose for reason itself but in faith. This verse does not impose an obligation to bring forward a learned proof and logical defense of revelation. But as believers deny themselves, crucify the world, and brave persecution, they must be buoyed up by some strong "hope"; men of the world, having no such hope themselves, are moved by curiosity to ask the secret of this hope; the believer must be ready to give an experimental account "how this hope arose in him, what it contains, and on what it rests" [STEIGER].

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - with The oldest manuscripts read, "but with." Be ready, but with "meekness." Not pertly and arrogantly.

The oldest manuscripts read, "but with." Be ready, but with "meekness." Not pertly and arrogantly.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - meekness (1Pe 3:4). The most effective way; not self-sufficient impetuosity.

(1Pe 3:4). The most effective way; not self-sufficient impetuosity.

JFB: 1Pe 3:15 - fear Due respect towards man, and reverence towards God, remembering His cause does not need man's hot temper to uphold it.

Due respect towards man, and reverence towards God, remembering His cause does not need man's hot temper to uphold it.

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience The secret spring of readiness to give account of our hope. So hope and good conscience go together in Act 24:15-16. Profession without practice has n...

The secret spring of readiness to give account of our hope. So hope and good conscience go together in Act 24:15-16. Profession without practice has no weight. But those who have a good conscience can afford to give an account of their hope "with meekness."

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - whereas (1Pe 2:12).

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - they speak evil of you, as of evildoers One oldest manuscript reads, "ye are spoken against," omitting the rest.

One oldest manuscript reads, "ye are spoken against," omitting the rest.

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - falsely accuse "calumniate"; the Greek expresses malice shown in deeds as well as in words. It is translated, "despitefully use," Mat 5:44; Luk 6:28.

"calumniate"; the Greek expresses malice shown in deeds as well as in words. It is translated, "despitefully use," Mat 5:44; Luk 6:28.

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - conversation Life, conduct.

Life, conduct.

JFB: 1Pe 3:16 - in Christ Who is the very element of your life as Christians. "In Christ" defines "good." It is your good walk as Christians, not as citizens, that calls forth ...

Who is the very element of your life as Christians. "In Christ" defines "good." It is your good walk as Christians, not as citizens, that calls forth malice (1Pe 4:4-5, 1Pe 4:14).

JFB: 1Pe 3:17 - better One may object, I would not bear it so ill if I had deserved it. Peter replies, it is better that you did not deserve it, in order that doing well and...

One may object, I would not bear it so ill if I had deserved it. Peter replies, it is better that you did not deserve it, in order that doing well and yet being spoken against, you may prove yourself a true Christian [GERHARD].

JFB: 1Pe 3:17 - if the will of God be so Rather as the optative is in the oldest manuscripts, "if the will of God should will it so." Those who honor God's will as their highest law (1Pe 2:15...

Rather as the optative is in the oldest manuscripts, "if the will of God should will it so." Those who honor God's will as their highest law (1Pe 2:15) have the comfort to know that suffering is God's appointment (1Pe 4:19). So Christ Himself; our inclination does not wish it.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - -- Confirmation of 1Pe 3:17, by the glorious results of Christ's suffering innocently.

Confirmation of 1Pe 3:17, by the glorious results of Christ's suffering innocently.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - For "Because." That is "better," 1Pe 3:17, means of which we are rendered more like to Christ in death and in life; for His death brought the best issue t...

"Because." That is "better," 1Pe 3:17, means of which we are rendered more like to Christ in death and in life; for His death brought the best issue to Himself and to us [BENGEL].

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - Christ The Anointed Holy One of God; the Holy suffered for sins, the Just for the unjust.

The Anointed Holy One of God; the Holy suffered for sins, the Just for the unjust.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - also As well as yourselves (1Pe 3:17). Compare 1Pe 2:21; there His suffering was brought forward as an example to us; here, as a proof of the blessedness o...

As well as yourselves (1Pe 3:17). Compare 1Pe 2:21; there His suffering was brought forward as an example to us; here, as a proof of the blessedness of suffering for well-doing.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - once For all; never again to suffer. It is "better" for us also once to suffer with Christ, than for ever without Christ We now are suffering our "once"; i...

For all; never again to suffer. It is "better" for us also once to suffer with Christ, than for ever without Christ We now are suffering our "once"; it will soon be a thing of the past; a bright consolation to the tried.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - for sins As though He had Himself committed them. He exposed Himself to death by His "confession," even as we are called on to "give an answer to him that aske...

As though He had Himself committed them. He exposed Himself to death by His "confession," even as we are called on to "give an answer to him that asketh a reason of our hope." This was "well-doing" in its highest manifestation. As He suffered, "The Just," so we ought willingly to suffer, for righteousness' sake (1Pe 3:14; compare 1Pe 3:12, 1Pe 3:17).

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - that he might bring us to God Together with Himself in His ascension to the right hand of God (1Pe 3:22). He brings us, "the unjust," justified together with Him into heaven. So th...

Together with Himself in His ascension to the right hand of God (1Pe 3:22). He brings us, "the unjust," justified together with Him into heaven. So the result of Christ's death is His drawing men to Him; spiritually now, in our having access into the Holiest, opened by Christ's ascension; literally hereafter. "Bring us," moreover, by the same steps of humiliation and exaltation through which He Himself passed. The several steps of Christ's progress from lowliness to glory are trodden over again by His people in virtue of their oneness with Him (1Pe 4:1-3). "To God," is Greek dative (not the preposition and case), implying that God wishes it [BENGEL].

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - put to death The means of His bringing us to God.

The means of His bringing us to God.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - in the flesh That is, in respect to the life of flesh and blood.

That is, in respect to the life of flesh and blood.

JFB: 1Pe 3:18 - quickened by the Spirit The oldest manuscripts omit the Greek article. Translate with the preposition "in," as the antithesis to the previous "in the flesh" requires, "IN spi...

The oldest manuscripts omit the Greek article. Translate with the preposition "in," as the antithesis to the previous "in the flesh" requires, "IN spirit," that is, in respect to His Spirit. "Put to death" in the former mode of life; "quickened" in the other. Not that His Spirit ever died and was quickened, or made alive again, but whereas He had lived after the manner of mortal men in the flesh, He began to live a spiritual "resurrection" (1Pe 3:21) life, whereby He has the power to bring us to God. Two ways of explaining 1Pe 3:18-19, are open to us: (1) "Quickened in Spirit," that is, immediately on His release from the "flesh," the energy of His undying spirit-life was "quickened" by God the Father, into new modes of action, namely, "in the Spirit He went down (as subsequently He went up to heaven, 1Pe 3:22, the same Greek verb) and heralded [not salvation, as ALFORD, contrary to Scripture, which everywhere represents man's state, whether saved or lost, after death irreversible. Nor is any mention made of the conversion of the spirits in prison. See on 1Pe 3:20. Nor is the phrase here 'preached the Gospel' (evangelizo), but 'heralded' (ekeruxe) or 'preached'; but simply made the announcement of His finished work; so the same Greek in Mar 1:45, 'publish,' confirming Enoch and Noah's testimony, and thereby declaring the virtual condemnation of their unbelief, and the salvation of Noah and believers; a sample of the similar opposite effects of the same work on all unbelievers, and believers, respectively; also a consolation to those whom Peter addresses, in their sufferings at the hands of unbelievers; specially selected for the sake of 'baptism,' its 'antitype' (1Pe 3:21), which, as a seal, marks believers as separated from the rest of the doomed world] to the spirits (His Spirit speaking to the spirits) in prison (in Hades or Sheol, awaiting the judgment, 2Pe 2:4), which were of old disobedient when," &c. (2) The strongest point in favor of (1) is the position of "sometime," that is, of old, connected with "disobedient"; whereas if the preaching or announcing were a thing long past, we should expect "sometime," or of old, to be joined to "went and preached." But this transposition may express that their disobedience preceded His preaching. The Greek participle expresses the reason of His preaching, "inasmuch as they were sometime disobedient" (compare 1Pe 4:6). Also "went" seems to mean a personal going, as in 1Pe 3:22, not merely in spirit. But see the answer below. The objections are "quickened" must refer to Christ's body (compare 1Pe 3:21, end), for as His Spirit never ceased to live, it cannot be said to be "quickened." Compare Joh 5:21; Rom 8:11, and other passages, where "quicken" is used of the bodily resurrection. Also, not His Spirit, but His soul, went to Hades. His Spirit was commended by Him at death to His Father, and was thereupon "in Paradise." The theory--(1) would thus require that His descent to the spirits in prison should be after His resurrection! Compare Eph 4:9-10, which makes the descent precede the ascent. Also Scripture elsewhere is silent about such a heralding, though possibly Christ's death had immediate effects on the state of both the godly and the ungodly in Hades: the souls of the godly heretofore in comparative confinement, perhaps then having been, as some Fathers thought, translated to God's immediate and heavenly presence; but this cannot be proved from Scripture. Compare however, Joh 3:13; Col 1:18. Prison is always used in a bad sense in Scripture. "Paradise" and "Abraham's bosom," the abode of good spirits in Old Testament times, are separated by a wide gulf from Hell or Hades, and cannot be called "prison." Compare 2Co 12:2, 2Co 12:4, where "paradise" and the "third heaven" correspond. Also, why should the antediluvian unbelievers in particular be selected as the objects of His preaching in Hades? Therefore explain: "Quickened in spirit, in which (as distinguished from in person; the words "in which," that is, in spirit, expressly obviating the objection that "went" implies a personal going) He went (in the person of Noah, "a preacher of righteousness," 2Pe 2:5 : ALFORD'S own Note, Eph 2:17, is the best reply to his argument from "went" that a local going to Hades in person is meant. As "He CAME and preached peace" by His Spirit in the apostles and ministers after His death and ascension: so before His incarnation He preached in Spirit through Noah to the antediluvians, Joh 14:18, Joh 14:28; Act 26:23. "Christ should show," literally, "announce light to the Gentiles") and preached unto the spirits in prison, that is, the antediluvians, whose bodies indeed seemed free, but their spirits were in prison, shut up in the earth as one great condemned cell (exactly parallel to Isa 24:22-23 "upon the earth . . . they shall be gathered together as prisoners are gathered in the pit, and shall be shut up in the prison," &c. [just as the fallen angels are judicially regarded as "in chains of darkness," though for a time now at large on the earth, 1Pe 2:4], where 1Pe 3:18 has a plain allusion to the flood, "the windows from on high are open," compare Gen 7:11); from this prison the only way of escape was that preached by Christ in Noah. Christ, who in our times came in the flesh, in the days of Noah preached in Spirit by Noah to the spirits then in prison (Isa 61:1, end, "the Spirit of the Lord God hath sent me to proclaim the opening of the prison to them that are bound"). So in 1Pe 1:11, "the Spirit of Christ" is said to have testified in the prophets. As Christ suffered even to death by enemies, and was afterwards quickened in virtue of His "Spirit" (or divine nature, Rom 1:3-4; 1Co 15:45), which henceforth acted in its full energy, the first result of which was the raising of His body (1Pe 3:21, end) from the prison of the grave and His soul from Hades; so the same Spirit of Christ enabled Noah, amidst reproach and trials, to preach to the disobedient spirits fast bound in wrath. That Spirit in you can enable you also to suffer patiently now, looking for the resurrection deliverance.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - once Not in the oldest manuscripts.

Not in the oldest manuscripts.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - when . . . the long-suffering of God waited in the days of Noah Oldest manuscripts. Greek, "was continuing to wait on" (if haply men in the hundred twenty years of grace would repent) until the end of His waiting c...

Oldest manuscripts. Greek, "was continuing to wait on" (if haply men in the hundred twenty years of grace would repent) until the end of His waiting came in their death by the flood. This refutes ALFORD'S idea of a second day of grace having been given in Hades. Noah's days are selected, as the ark and the destroying flood answer respectively to "baptism" and the coming destruction of unbelievers by fire.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - while the ark was a-preparing (Heb 11:7). A long period of God's "long-suffering and waiting," as Noah had few to help him, which rendered the world's unbelief the more inexcusabl...

(Heb 11:7). A long period of God's "long-suffering and waiting," as Noah had few to help him, which rendered the world's unbelief the more inexcusable.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - wherein Literally, "(by having entered) into which."

Literally, "(by having entered) into which."

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - eight Seven (the sacred number) with ungodly Ham.

Seven (the sacred number) with ungodly Ham.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - few So now.

So now.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - souls As this term is here used of living persons, why should not "spirits" also? Noah preached to their ears, but Christ in spirit, to their spirits, or sp...

As this term is here used of living persons, why should not "spirits" also? Noah preached to their ears, but Christ in spirit, to their spirits, or spiritual natures.

JFB: 1Pe 3:20 - saved by water The same water which drowned the unbelieving, buoyed up the ark in which the eight were saved. Not as some translate, "were brought safe through the w...

The same water which drowned the unbelieving, buoyed up the ark in which the eight were saved. Not as some translate, "were brought safe through the water." However, the sense of the preposition may be as in 1Co 3:15, "they were safely preserved through the water," though having to be in the water.

JFB: 1Pe 3:21 - whereunto The oldest manuscripts read, "which": literally, "which (namely, water, in general; being) the antitype (of the water of the flood) is now saving (the...

The oldest manuscripts read, "which": literally, "which (namely, water, in general; being) the antitype (of the water of the flood) is now saving (the salvation being not yet fully realized by us, compare 1Co 10:1-2, 1Co 10:5; Jud 1:5; puts into a state of salvation) us also (two oldest manuscripts read 'you' for 'us': You also, as well as Noah and his party), to wit, baptism." Water saved Noah not of itself, but by sustaining the ark built in faith, resting on God's word: it was to him the sign and mean of a kind of regeneration, of the earth. The flood was for Noah a baptism, as the passage through the Red Sea was for the Israelites; by baptism in the flood he and his family were transferred from the old world to the new: from immediate destruction to lengthened probation; from the companionship of the wicked to communion with God; from the severing of all bonds between the creature and the Creator to the privileges of the covenant: so we by spiritual baptism. As there was a Ham who forfeited the privileges of the covenant, so many now. The antitypical water, namely, baptism, saves you also not of itself, nor the mere material water, but the spiritual thing conjoined with it, repentance and faith, of which it is the sign and seal, as Peter proceeds to explain. Compare the union of the sign and thing signified, Joh 3:5; Eph 5:26; Tit 3:5; Heb 10:22; compare 1Jo 5:6.

JFB: 1Pe 3:21 - not the, &c. "flesh" bears the emphasis. "Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh" (as is done by a mere water baptism, unaccompanied with the Spirit's bapt...

"flesh" bears the emphasis. "Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh" (as is done by a mere water baptism, unaccompanied with the Spirit's baptism, compare Eph 2:11), but of the soul. It is the ark (Christ and His Spirit-filled Church), not the water, which is the instrument of salvation: the water only flowed round the ark; so not the mere water baptism, but the water when accompanied with the Spirit.

JFB: 1Pe 3:21 - answer Greek, "interrogation"; referring to the questions asked of candidates for baptism; eliciting a confession of faith "toward God" and a renunciation of...

Greek, "interrogation"; referring to the questions asked of candidates for baptism; eliciting a confession of faith "toward God" and a renunciation of Satan ([AUGUSTINE, The Creed, 4.1]; [CYPRIAN, Epistles, 7, To Rogatianus]), which, when flowing from "a good conscience," assure one of being "saved." Literally, "a good conscience's interrogation (including the satisfactory answer) toward God." I prefer this to the translation of WAHL, ALFORD and others, "inquiry of a good conscience after God": not one of the parallels alleged, not even 2Sa 11:7, in the Septuagint, is strictly in point. Recent Byzantine Greek idiom (whereby the term meant: (1) the question; (2) the stipulation; (3) the engagement), easily flowing from the usage of the word as Peter has it, confirms the former translation.

JFB: 1Pe 3:21 - by the resurrection of Jesus Joined with "saves you": In so far as baptism applies to us the power of Christ's resurrection. As Christ's death unto sin is the source of the believ...

Joined with "saves you": In so far as baptism applies to us the power of Christ's resurrection. As Christ's death unto sin is the source of the believer's death unto, and so deliverance from, sin's penalty and power; so His resurrection life is the source of the believer's new spiritual life.

JFB: 1Pe 3:22 - -- (Psa 110:1; Rom 8:34, Rom 8:38; 1Co 15:24; Eph 1:21; Eph 3:10; Col 1:16; Col 2:10-15). The fruit of His patience in His voluntary endured and undeserv...

(Psa 110:1; Rom 8:34, Rom 8:38; 1Co 15:24; Eph 1:21; Eph 3:10; Col 1:16; Col 2:10-15). The fruit of His patience in His voluntary endured and undeserved sufferings: a pattern to us, 1Pe 3:17-18.

JFB: 1Pe 3:22 - gone (Luk 24:51). Proving against rationalists an actual material ascension. Literally, "is on the right hand of God, having gone into heaven." The oldest...

(Luk 24:51). Proving against rationalists an actual material ascension. Literally, "is on the right hand of God, having gone into heaven." The oldest manuscripts of the Vulgate and the Latin Fathers, add what expresses the benefit to us of Christ's sitting on God's right hand, "Who is on the right hand of God, having swallowed up death that we may become heirs of everlasting life"; involving for us A STATE OF LIFE, saved, glorious, and eternal. The Greek manuscripts, however, reject the words. Compare with this verse Peter's speeches, Act 2:32-35; Act 3:21, Act 3:26; Act 10:40, Act 10:42.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:1 - Ye wives, be in subjection Ye wives, be in subjection - Consider that your husband is, by God’ s appointment, the head and ruler of the house; do not, therefore, attempt ...

Ye wives, be in subjection - Consider that your husband is, by God’ s appointment, the head and ruler of the house; do not, therefore, attempt to usurp his government; for even though he obey not the word - is not a believer in the Christian doctrine, his rule is not thereby impaired; for Christianity never alters civil relations: and your affectionate, obedient conduct will be the most likely means of convincing him of the truth of the doctrine which you have received

Clarke: 1Pe 3:1 - Without the word Without the word - That your holy conduct may be the means of begetting in them a reverence for Christianity, the preaching of which they will not h...

Without the word - That your holy conduct may be the means of begetting in them a reverence for Christianity, the preaching of which they will not hear. See the notes on 1Co 14:34, and the other places referred to in the margin.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:2 - Chaste conversation - with fear Chaste conversation - with fear - While they see that ye join modesty, chastity, and the purest manners, to the fear of God. Or perhaps fear, φο...

Chaste conversation - with fear - While they see that ye join modesty, chastity, and the purest manners, to the fear of God. Or perhaps fear, φοβος, is taken, as in Eph 5:33, for the reverence due to the husband.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:3 - Whose adorning Whose adorning - Κοσμος . See the note on Heb 9:1, where the word κοσμος, world or ornament, is defined; and also the note on Gen 2:1

Whose adorning - Κοσμος . See the note on Heb 9:1, where the word κοσμος, world or ornament, is defined; and also the note on Gen 2:1

Clarke: 1Pe 3:3 - Plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold Plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold - Plaiting the hair, and variously folding it about the head, was the most ancient and most simple mode of...

Plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold - Plaiting the hair, and variously folding it about the head, was the most ancient and most simple mode of disposing of this chief ornament of the female head. It was practised anciently in every part of the east, and is so to the present day in India, in China, and also in Barbary. It was also prevalent among the Greeks and Romans, as ancient gems, busts, and statues, still remaining, sufficiently declare. We have a remarkable instance of the plaiting of the hair in a statue of Agrippina, wife of Germanicus, an exact representation of which may be seen in a work of Andre Lens, entitled Le Costume de Peuple de I’ Antiquite, pl. 33. Many plates in the same work show the different modes of dressing the hair which obtained among the Egyptians, Greeks, Romans, Persians, and other nations. Thin plates of gold were often mixed with the hair, to make it appear more ornamental by the reflection of light and of the solar rays. Small golden buckles were also used in different parts; and among the Roman ladies, pearls and precious stones of different colors. Pliny assures us, Hist. Nat., l. ix. c. 35, that these latter ornaments were not introduced among the Roman women till the time of Sylla, about 110 years before the Christian era. But it is evident, from many remaining monuments, that in numerous cases the hair differently plaited and curled was the only ornament of the head. Often a simple pin, sometimes of ivory, pointed with gold, seemed to connect the plaits. In monuments of antiquity the heads of the married and single women may be known, the former by the hair being parted from the forehead over the middle of the top of the head, the latter by being quite close, or being plaited and curled all in a general mass

There is a remarkable passage in Plutarch, Conjugalia Praecept., c. xxvi., very like that in the text: Κοσμος γαρ εστιν, ὡς ελεγε Κρατης, το κοσμουν· κοσμει δε το κοσμιωτεραν γυναικα ποιουν· ποιει δε ταυτην ου χρυσος, ουτε σμαραγδος, ουτε κοκκος, αλλ ὁσα σεμνοτητος, ευταξιας, αιδους εμφασιν περιτιθησιν· Opera a Wyttenb., vol. i., page 390. "An ornament, as Crates said, is that which adorns. The proper ornament of a woman is that which becomes her best. This is neither gold, nor pearls, nor scarlet; but those things which are an evident proof of gravity, regularity, and modesty."The wife of Phocion, a celebrated Athenian general, receiving a visit from a lady who was elegantly adorned with gold and jewels, and her hair with pearls, took occasion to call the attention of her guest to the elegance and costliness of her dress, remarking at the same time, "My ornament is my husband, now for the twentieth year general of the Athenians."Plut., in vit. Phoc. How few Christian women act this part! Women are in general at as much pains and cost in their dress, as if by it they were to be recommended both to God and man. It is, however, in every case, the argument either of a shallow mind, or of a vain and corrupted heart.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:4 - The hidden man of the heart The hidden man of the heart - Ὁ κρυπτος της καρδιας ανθρωπος . This phrase is of the same import with that of St. Paul,...

The hidden man of the heart - Ὁ κρυπτος της καρδιας ανθρωπος . This phrase is of the same import with that of St. Paul, Rom 7:22, ὁ εσω ανθρωπος, the inner man; that is, the soul, with the whole system of affections and passions. Every part of the Scripture treats man as a compound being: the body is the outward or visible man; the soul, the inward, hidden, or invisible man. The term ανθρωπος, man, is derived, according to the best etymologists, from ανα τρεπων ωπα, turning the face upward. This derivation of the word is beautifully paraphrased by Ovid. The whole passage is beautiful; and, though well known, I shall insert it. After speaking of the creation and formation of all the irrational animals, he proceeds thus: -

" Sanctius his animal, mentisque capacius alta

Deerat adhuc, et quod dominari in caetera posset

Natus Homo est: sive hunc divino semine feci

Ille opifex rerum, mundi melioris origo

Sive recens tellus, seductaque nuper ab alt

Aethere, cognati retinebat semina coeli. -

Pronaque cum spectent animalia caetera terram

Os Homini Sublime Dedit; Coelumque Tuer

Jussit, et erectos ad sidera tollere veltus .

Metam, lib. i. ver. 76

"A creature of a more exalted kin

Was wanting yet, and then was Man design’ d

Conscious of thought, of more capacious breast

For empire form’ d, and fit to rule the rest

Whether with particles of heavenly fir

The God of nature did his soul inspire

Or earth but new divided from the sky

Which still retain’ d th’ ethereal energy. -

Thus, while the mute creation downward ben

Their sight, and to their earthly mother tend

Man looks aloft, and with erected eye

Beholds his own hereditary skies.

Dryden

The word ανθρωπος, man, is frequently applied to the soul, but generally with some epithet. Thus ὁ εσω ανθρωπος, the inner man, Rom 7:22, to distinguish it from the body, which is called ὁ εξω ανθρωπος, the outer man, 2Co 4:16; ὁ κρυπτος ανθρωπος, the hidden man, as in the text; ὁ καινος ανθρωπος, the new man, the soul renewed in righteousness, Eph 2:15, to distinguish him from ὁ παλαιος ανθρωπος, the old man, that is, man unregenerate or in a state of sin, Rom 6:6. And the soul is thus distinguished by the Greek philosophers

Clarke: 1Pe 3:4 - A meek and quiet spirit A meek and quiet spirit - That is, a mind that will not give provocation to others, nor receive irritation by the provocation of others. Meekness wi...

A meek and quiet spirit - That is, a mind that will not give provocation to others, nor receive irritation by the provocation of others. Meekness will prevent the first; quietness will guard against the last

Clarke: 1Pe 3:4 - Great price Great price - All the ornaments placed on the head and body of the most illustrious female, are, in the sight of God, of no worth; but a meek and si...

Great price - All the ornaments placed on the head and body of the most illustrious female, are, in the sight of God, of no worth; but a meek and silent spirit are, in his sight, invaluable, because proceeding from and leading to himself, being incorruptible, surviving the ruins of the body and the ruins of time, and enduring eternally.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:5 - For after this manner For after this manner - Simplicity reigned in primitive times; natural ornaments alone were then in use. Trade and commerce brought in luxuries; and...

For after this manner - Simplicity reigned in primitive times; natural ornaments alone were then in use. Trade and commerce brought in luxuries; and luxury brought pride, and all the excessive nonsense of Dress. No female head ever looks so well as when adorned with its own hair alone. This is the ornament appointed by God. To cut it off or to cover it is an unnatural practice; and to exchange the hair which God has given for hair of some other color, is an insult to the Creator. How the delicacy of the female character can stoop to the use of false hair, and especially when it is considered that the chief part of this kind of hair was once the natural property of some ruffian soldier, who fell in battle by many a ghastly wound, is more than I can possibly comprehend. See the notes on 1Co 11:14-16 (note); and 1Ti 2:9 (note)

Clarke: 1Pe 3:5 - Who trusted in God Who trusted in God - The women who trust Not in God are fond of dress and frippery; those who trust in God follow nature and common sense

Who trusted in God - The women who trust Not in God are fond of dress and frippery; those who trust in God follow nature and common sense

Clarke: 1Pe 3:5 - Being in subjection unto their own husbands Being in subjection unto their own husbands - It will rarely be found that women who are fond of dress, and extravagant in it, have any subjection t...

Being in subjection unto their own husbands - It will rarely be found that women who are fond of dress, and extravagant in it, have any subjection to their husbands but what comes from mere necessity. Indeed, their dress, which they intend as an attractive to the eyes of others, is a sufficient proof that they have neither love nor respect for their own husbands. Let them who are concerned refute the charge.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:6 - Even as Sara obeyed Even as Sara obeyed - Almost the same words are in Rab. Tanchum, fol. 9, 3: "The wife of Abraham reverenced him, and called him lord, as it is writt...

Even as Sara obeyed - Almost the same words are in Rab. Tanchum, fol. 9, 3: "The wife of Abraham reverenced him, and called him lord, as it is written, Gen 18:12 : And my lord is old."The words of the apostle imply that she acknowledged his superiority, and her own subjection to him, in the order of God

Clarke: 1Pe 3:6 - Whose daughters ye are Whose daughters ye are - As Abraham is represented the father of all his male believing descendants, so Sara is represented as the mother of all her...

Whose daughters ye are - As Abraham is represented the father of all his male believing descendants, so Sara is represented as the mother of all her believing female posterity. A son of Abraham is a true believer; a daughter of Sarah is the same

Clarke: 1Pe 3:6 - As long as ye do well As long as ye do well - For you cannot maintain your relationship to her longer than ye believe; and ye cannot believe longer than ye continue to ob...

As long as ye do well - For you cannot maintain your relationship to her longer than ye believe; and ye cannot believe longer than ye continue to obey

Clarke: 1Pe 3:6 - And are not afraid with any amazement And are not afraid with any amazement - It is difficult to extract any sense out of this clause. The original is not very easy; Μη φοβουμε...

And are not afraid with any amazement - It is difficult to extract any sense out of this clause. The original is not very easy; Μη φοβουμεναι μηδεμιαν πτοησιν may be rendered, And not fearing with any terror. If ye do well, and act conscientiously your part as faithful wives, ye will at no time live under the distressing apprehension of being found out, or terrified at every appearance of the discovery of infidelities, or improper conduct. Being not guilty of these, you will not have occasion to fear detection. On this subject a learned man has quoted these words, which I have produced elsewhere, Eph 6:14 : -

hic murus aheneus esto

Nil conscire sibi, nulla pallescere culpa

"Let this be my brazen wall, to be self-convicted of no private delinquency, nor to change color at being charged with a fault.

Happy is the wife, and happy is the husband, who can conscientiously adopt the saying.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:7 - Dwell with them according to knowledge Dwell with them according to knowledge - Give your wives, by no species of unkind carriage, any excuse for delinquency. How can a man expect his wif...

Dwell with them according to knowledge - Give your wives, by no species of unkind carriage, any excuse for delinquency. How can a man expect his wife to be faithful to him, if he be unfaithful to her? and vice versa

Clarke: 1Pe 3:7 - Giving honor unto the wife Giving honor unto the wife - Using your superior strength and experience in her behalf, and thus honouring her by becoming her protector and support...

Giving honor unto the wife - Using your superior strength and experience in her behalf, and thus honouring her by becoming her protector and support. But the word τιμη honor, signifies maintenance as well as respect; - maintain, provide for the wife

Clarke: 1Pe 3:7 - As - the weaker vessel As - the weaker vessel - Being more delicately, and consequently more slenderly, constructed. Roughness and strength go hand in hand; so likewise do...

As - the weaker vessel - Being more delicately, and consequently more slenderly, constructed. Roughness and strength go hand in hand; so likewise do beauty and frailty. The female has what the man wants - beauty and delicacy. The male has what the female wants - courage and strength. The one is as good in its place as the other: and by these things God has made an equality between the man and the woman, so that there is properly very little superiority on either side. See the note on 1Th 4:4

Clarke: 1Pe 3:7 - Being heirs together Being heirs together - Both the man and woman being equally called to eternal glory: and as prayer is one great means of obtaining a meetness for it...

Being heirs together - Both the man and woman being equally called to eternal glory: and as prayer is one great means of obtaining a meetness for it, it is necessary that they should live together in such a manner as to prevent all family contentions, that they may not be prevented, by disputes or misunderstandings, from uniting daily in this most important duty - family and social prayer.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:8 - Be ye all of one mind Be ye all of one mind - Unity, both in the family and in the Church, being essentially necessary to peace and salvation. See on Rom 12:16 (note); Ro...

Be ye all of one mind - Unity, both in the family and in the Church, being essentially necessary to peace and salvation. See on Rom 12:16 (note); Rom 15:5 (note)

Clarke: 1Pe 3:8 - Having compassion Having compassion - Συμπαθεις· Being sympathetic; feeling for each other; bearing each other’ s burdens

Having compassion - Συμπαθεις· Being sympathetic; feeling for each other; bearing each other’ s burdens

Clarke: 1Pe 3:8 - Love as brethren Love as brethren - Φιλαδελφοι· Be lovers of the brethren

Love as brethren - Φιλαδελφοι· Be lovers of the brethren

Clarke: 1Pe 3:8 - Pitiful Pitiful - Ευσπλαγχνοι· Tender-hearted; let your bowels yearn over the distressed and afflicted

Pitiful - Ευσπλαγχνοι· Tender-hearted; let your bowels yearn over the distressed and afflicted

Clarke: 1Pe 3:8 - Courteous Courteous - Φιλοφρονες· Be friendly-minded; acquire and cultivate a friendly disposition. But instead of this word, ταπεινοφρ...

Courteous - Φιλοφρονες· Be friendly-minded; acquire and cultivate a friendly disposition. But instead of this word, ταπεινοφρονες, be humble-minded, is the reading of ABC, more than twenty others, with the Syriac, Arabic of Erpen, Coptic, Armenian, Slavonic, and some of the fathers. This is probably the true reading, and Griesbach has admitted it into the text.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:9 - Not rendering evil for evil Not rendering evil for evil - Purposing, saying, doing nothing but good; and invariably returning good for evil

Not rendering evil for evil - Purposing, saying, doing nothing but good; and invariably returning good for evil

Clarke: 1Pe 3:9 - Ye are thereunto called Ye are thereunto called - This is your calling - your business in life, to do good, and to do good for evil, and to implore God’ s blessing eve...

Ye are thereunto called - This is your calling - your business in life, to do good, and to do good for evil, and to implore God’ s blessing even on your worst enemies. And this is not only your duty, but your interest; for in so doing you shall obtain God’ s blessing, even life for evermore.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:10 - For he that will love life For he that will love life - This is a quotation from Psa 34:12-16, as it stands in the Septuagint; only the aorist of the imperative is changed fro...

For he that will love life - This is a quotation from Psa 34:12-16, as it stands in the Septuagint; only the aorist of the imperative is changed from the second into the third person, etc. He who wishes to live long and prosperously, must act as he is here directed

1.    He must refrain from evil-speaking, lying, and slandering

2.    He must avoid flattery and fair speeches, which cover hypocritical or wicked intentions

3.    He must avoid evil, keep going away εκκλινατω, from evil

4.    He must do good; he must walk in the way of righteousness

5.    He must live peaceably with all men; seek peace where it has been lost; restore it where it has been broken; and pursue it where it seems to be flying away

He who lives thus must live happy in himself. And as excess in action and passion always tends to the shortening of life, and nothing preys on the constitution more than disorderly passions, he must live not only happiest but longest who avoids them. It is an edifying story that is told in the book Mussar, chap. 1., quoted by Rosenmuller: "A certain person, travelling through the city, continued to call out, Who wants the elixir of life? The daughter of Rabbi Joda heard him, and told her father. He said, Call the man in. When he came in, the rabbi said, What is that elixir of life thou sellest? He answered, Is it not written, What man is he that loveth life, and desireth to see good days, let him refrain his tongue from evil, and his lips from speaking guile? This is the elixir of life, and is found in the mouth of man."

Clarke: 1Pe 3:12 - The eyes of the Lord are over the righteous The eyes of the Lord are over the righteous - That is, He is continually under God’ s notice and his care; God continually watches for him and ...

The eyes of the Lord are over the righteous - That is, He is continually under God’ s notice and his care; God continually watches for him and watches over him, and he is under his constant protection

Clarke: 1Pe 3:12 - And his ears are open unto their prayers And his ears are open unto their prayers - The original is very emphatic: The eyes of the Lord are upon the righteous, and his ears to their prayers...

And his ears are open unto their prayers - The original is very emphatic: The eyes of the Lord are upon the righteous, and his ears to their prayers. The righteous man ever attracts the Divine notice, and wherever he is, there is the ear of God; for, as every righteous man is a man of prayer, wherever he prays, there is the ear of God, into which the prayer, as soon as formed, enters

Clarke: 1Pe 3:12 - But the face of the Lord But the face of the Lord - Far from his eye being upon them, or his ear open to their requests, (for prayer they have none), his face, his approbati...

But the face of the Lord - Far from his eye being upon them, or his ear open to their requests, (for prayer they have none), his face, his approbation, his providence and blessing, are turned away from them; and he only looks upon them to abhor them, and to turn the arm of his justice against them.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:13 - Who is he that will harm you Who is he that will harm you - Is it possible that a man can be wretched who has God for his friend? "All the devices which the devil or wicked men ...

Who is he that will harm you - Is it possible that a man can be wretched who has God for his friend? "All the devices which the devil or wicked men work against such must be brought to naught, and by the providence of his goodness be dispersed.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:13 - If ye be followers, etc. If ye be followers, etc. - Εαν Του Αγαθου μιμηται γενησθε· If ye be imitators of the good One, i.e. of God. Ὁ Αγ...

If ye be followers, etc. - Εαν Του Αγαθου μιμηται γενησθε· If ye be imitators of the good One, i.e. of God. Ὁ Αγαθος, the good One, is one of God’ s prime epithets, see Mat 19:17, and Satan is distinguished by the reverse, ὁ πονηρος, the Evil one, Mat 13:19 (note). Instead of μιμηται, followers, or rather imitators, ζηλωται, zealous of what is good, is the reading of ABC, fifteen others, both the Syriac, Erpen’ s Arabic, the Coptic, Ethiopic, Armenian and Vulgate, with some of the fathers. This is a very probable reading, and Griesbach has placed it in the margin as a candidate for the place of that in the text.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:14 - But and if ye suffer But and if ye suffer - God may permit you to be tried and persecuted for righteousness’ sake, but this cannot essentially harm you; he will pr...

But and if ye suffer - God may permit you to be tried and persecuted for righteousness’ sake, but this cannot essentially harm you; he will press even this into your service, and make it work for your good

Clarke: 1Pe 3:14 - Happy are ye Happy are ye - This seems to refer to Mat 5:10, etc. Blessed or happy, are ye when men persecute you, etc. It is a happiness to suffer for Christ; a...

Happy are ye - This seems to refer to Mat 5:10, etc. Blessed or happy, are ye when men persecute you, etc. It is a happiness to suffer for Christ; and it is a happiness, because if a man were not holy and righteous the world would not persecute him, so he is happy in the very cause of his sufferings

Clarke: 1Pe 3:14 - Be not afraid of their terror Be not afraid of their terror - Τον δε φοβον αυτων μη φοβηθητε· Fear not their fear; see Isa 8:12. Sometimes fear is put...

Be not afraid of their terror - Τον δε φοβον αυτων μη φοβηθητε· Fear not their fear; see Isa 8:12. Sometimes fear is put for the object of a man’ s religious worship; see Gen 31:42; Pro 1:26, and the place in Isaiah just quoted. The exhortation may mean, Fear not their gods, they can do you no hurt; and supposing that they curse you by them, yet be not troubled; "He who fears God need have no other fear."

Clarke: 1Pe 3:15 - But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts - To sanctify God may signify to offer him the praises due to his grace, but as to sanctify literally signi...

But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts - To sanctify God may signify to offer him the praises due to his grace, but as to sanctify literally signifies to make holy, it is impossible that God should be thus sanctified. We have often already seen that ἁγιαζω signifies to separate from earth, that is, from any common use or purpose, that the thing or person thus separated may be devoted to a sacred use. Perhaps we should understand Peter’ s words thus: Entertain just notions of God; of his nature, power, will, justice, goodness, and truth. Do not conceive of him as being actuated by such passions as men; separate him in your hearts from every thing earthly, human, fickle, rigidly severe, or capriciously merciful. Consider that he can neither be like man, feel like man, nor act like man. Ascribe no human passions to him, for this would desecrate not sanctify him. Do not confine him in your conceptions to place, space, vacuity, heaven, or earth; endeavor to think worthily of the immensity and eternity of his nature, of his omniscience, omnipresence, and omnipotence. Avoid the error of the heathens, who bound even their Dii Majores , their greatest gods, by fate, as many well-meaning Christians do the true God by decrees; conceive of him as infinitely free to act or not act, as he pleases. Consider the goodness of his nature; for goodness, in every possible state of perfection and infinitude, belongs to him. Ascribe no malevolence to him; nor any work, purpose, or decree, that implies it: this is not only a human passion, but a passion of fallen man. Do not suppose that he can do evil, or that he can destroy when he might save; that he ever did, or ever can, hate any of those whom he made in his own image and in his own likeness, so as by a positive decree to doom them, unborn, to everlasting perdition, or, what is of the same import, pass them by without affording them the means of salvation, and consequently rendering it impossible for them to be saved. Thus endeavor to conceive of him; and, by so doing, you separate him from all that is imperfect, human, evil, capricious, changeable, and unkind. Ever remember that he has wisdom without error, power, without limits, truth without falsity, love without hatred, holiness without evil, and justice without rigour or severity on the one hand, or capricious tenderness on the other. In a word, that he neither can be, say, purpose, or do, any thing that is not infinitely just, holy, wise, true, and gracious; that he hates nothing that he has made; and has so loved the world, the whole human race, as to give his only-begotten Son to die for them, that they might not perish, but have everlasting life. Thus sanctify the Lord God in your hearts, and you will ever be ready to give a reason of the hope that is in you to every serious and candid inquirer after truth. Most religious systems and creeds are incapable of rational explanation, because founded on some misconception of the Divine nature

"They set at odds heaven’ s jarring attributes

And with one excellence another wound.

The system of humanizing God, and making him, by our unjust conceptions of him, to act as ourselves would in certain circumstances, has been the bane of both religion and piety; and on this ground infidels have laughed us to scorn. It is high time that we should no longer know God after the flesh; for even if we have known Jesus Christ after the flesh, we are to know him so no more

What I have written above is not against any particular creed of religious people, it is against any or all to whom it may justly apply, it may even be against some portions of my own; for even in this respect I am obliged daily to labor to sanctify the Lord God in my heart, to abstract him from every thing earthly and human, and apprehend him as far as possible in his own essential nature and attributes through the light of his Spirit and the medium of his own revelation. To act thus requires no common effort of soul: and just apprehensions of this kind are not acquired without much prayer, much self-reflection, much time, and much of the grace and mercy of God

Instead of τον Θεον, God, ABC, four others, both the Syriac, Erpen’ s Arabic, the Coptic, Vulgate, and Armenian, with Clement and Fulgentius, read τον Χριστον, Christ. Sanctify Christ in your hearts. This reading is at least equal to the other in the authorities by which it is supported; but which was written by St. Peter we know not

Clarke: 1Pe 3:15 - A reason of the hope A reason of the hope - An account of your hope of the resurrection of the dead and eternal life in God’ s glory. This was the great object of t...

A reason of the hope - An account of your hope of the resurrection of the dead and eternal life in God’ s glory. This was the great object of their hope, as Christ was the grand object of their faith

The word απολογια, which we translate answer, signifies a defense; from this we have our word apology, which did not originally signify an excuse for an act, but a defense of that act. The defences of Christianity by the primitive fathers are called apologies. See the note on Act 21:1

Clarke: 1Pe 3:15 - With meekness and fear With meekness and fear - Several excellent MSS. add the word αλλα, but, here, and it improves the sense considerably: Be ready always to give a...

With meekness and fear - Several excellent MSS. add the word αλλα, but, here, and it improves the sense considerably: Be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you, But with meekness and fear. Do not permit your readiness to answer, nor the confidence you have in the goodness of your cause, to lead you to answer pertly or superciliously to any person; defend the truth with all possible gentleness and fear, lest while you are doing it you should forget his presence whose cause you support, or say any thing unbecoming the dignity and holiness of the religion which you have espoused, or inconsistent with that heavenly temper which the Spirit of your indwelling Lord must infallibly produce.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience Having a good conscience - The testimony of God in your own soul, that in simplicity and godly sincerity you have your conversation in the world. Se...

Having a good conscience - The testimony of God in your own soul, that in simplicity and godly sincerity you have your conversation in the world. See on the term conscience at the end of Hebrews

Clarke: 1Pe 3:16 - Whereas they speak evil of you Whereas they speak evil of you - See the same sentiment in 1Pe 2:11 and the note there.

Whereas they speak evil of you - See the same sentiment in 1Pe 2:11 and the note there.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:17 - For it is better For it is better - See on 1Pe 2:19, 1Pe 2:20 (note).

For it is better - See on 1Pe 2:19, 1Pe 2:20 (note).

Clarke: 1Pe 3:18 - Christ also hath once suffered Christ also hath once suffered - See the notes on Rom 5:6; Heb 9:28 (note)

Christ also hath once suffered - See the notes on Rom 5:6; Heb 9:28 (note)

Clarke: 1Pe 3:18 - Put to death in the flesh Put to death in the flesh - In his human nature

Put to death in the flesh - In his human nature

Clarke: 1Pe 3:18 - But quickened by the Spirit But quickened by the Spirit - That very dead body revived by the power of his Divinity. There are various opinions on the meaning of this verse, wit...

But quickened by the Spirit - That very dead body revived by the power of his Divinity. There are various opinions on the meaning of this verse, with which I need not trouble the reader, as I have produced that which is most likely.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:19 - By which By which - Spirit, his own Divine energy and authority

By which - Spirit, his own Divine energy and authority

Clarke: 1Pe 3:19 - He went and preached He went and preached - By the ministry of Noah, one hundred and twenty years

He went and preached - By the ministry of Noah, one hundred and twenty years

Clarke: 1Pe 3:19 - Unto the spirits in prison Unto the spirits in prison - The inhabitants of the antediluvian world, who, having been disobedient, and convicted of the most flagrant transgressi...

Unto the spirits in prison - The inhabitants of the antediluvian world, who, having been disobedient, and convicted of the most flagrant transgressions against God, were sentenced by his just law to destruction. But their punishment was delayed to see if they would repent; and the long-suffering of God waited one hundred and twenty years, which were granted to them for this purpose; during which time, as criminals tried and convicted, they are represented as being in prison - detained under the arrest of Divine justice, which waited either for their repentance or the expiration of the respite, that the punishment pronounced might be inflicted. This I have long believed to be the sense of this difficult passage, and no other that I have seen is so consistent with the whole scope of the place. That the Spirit of God did strive with, convict, and reprove the antediluvians, is evident from Gen 6:3 : My Spirit shall not always strive with man, forasmuch as he is flesh; yet his days shall be one hundred and twenty years. And it was by this Spirit that Noah became a preacher of righteousness, and condemned that ungodly world, Heb 11:7, who would not believe till wrath - Divine punishment, came upon them to the uttermost. The word πνευμασι, spirits, is supposed to render this view of the subject improbable, because this must mean disembodied spirits; but this certainly does not follow, for the spirits of just men made perfect, Heb 12:23, certainly means righteous men, and men still in the Church militant; and the Father of spirits, Heb 12:9, means men still in the body; and the God of the spirits of all flesh, Num 16:22; Num 27:16, means men not in a disembodied state

But even on this word there are several various readings; some of the Greek MSS. read πνευματι, in spirit, and one Πνευματι Ἁγιῳ, in the Holy Spirit. I have before me one of the first, if not the very first edition of the Latin Bible; and in it the verse stands thus: In quo et hiis, qui in carcere erant, Spiritualiter veniens praedicavit ; "by which he came spiritually, and preached to them that were in prison.

In two very ancient MSS. of the Vulgate before me, the clause is thus: In quo et his qui in carcere erant Spiritu venient praedicavit ; "in which, coming by the Spirit, he preached to those who were in prison."This is the reading also in the Complutensian Polyglot

Another ancient MS. in my possession has the words nearly as in the printed copy: In quo et hiis qui in carcere Conclusi erant Spiritualiter veniens praedicavit ; "in which, coming spiritually, he preached to those who were Shut Up in prison.

Another MS., written about a.d. 1370, is the same as the printed copy

The common printed Vulgate is different from all these, and from all the MSS. of the Vulgate which I have seen in reading spiritibus , "to the spirits.

In my old MS. Bible, which contains the first translation into English ever made, the clause is the following: In whiche thing and to hem that weren closid togyder in prison, hi commynge in Spirit, prechide . The copy from which this translation was taken evidently read conclusi erdnt , with one of the MSS. quoted above, as closid togyder proves

I have quoted all these authorities from the most authentic and correct copies of the Vulgate, to show that from them there is no ground to believe that the text speaks of Christ’ s going to hell to preach the Gospel to the damned, or of his going to some feigned place where the souls of the patriarchs were detained, to whom he preached, and whom he delivered from that place and took with him to paradise, which the Romish Church holds as an article of faith

Though the judicious Calmet holds with his Church this opinion, yet he cannot consider the text of St. Peter as a proof of it. I will set down his own words: Le sentiment qui veut que Jesus Christ soit descendu aux enfers, pour annoncer sa venue aux anciens patriarches, et pour les tirer de cette espece de prison, ou ils Pattendoient si long tems, est indubitable; et nous le regardons comme un article de notre foi: mais on peut douter que ce soit le sens de Saint Pierre en cet endroit . "The opinion which states that Jesus Christ descended into hell, to announce his coming to the ancient patriarchs, and to deliver them from that species of prison, where they had so long waited for him, is incontrovertible; and we (the Catholics) consider it as an article of our faith: but we may doubt whether this be the meaning of St. Peter in this place."Some think the whole passage applies to the preaching of the Gospel to the Gentiles; but the interpretation given above appears to me, after the fullest consideration, to be the most consistent and rational, as I have already remarked.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:20 - When once the long-suffering of God waited When once the long-suffering of God waited - In Pirkey Aboth, cap. v. 2, we have these words: "There were ten generations from Adam to Noah, that th...

When once the long-suffering of God waited - In Pirkey Aboth, cap. v. 2, we have these words: "There were ten generations from Adam to Noah, that the long-suffering of God might appear; for each of these generations provoked him to anger, and went on in their iniquity, till at last the deluge came.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:20 - Were saved by water Were saved by water - While the ark was preparing, only Noah’ s family believed; these amounted to eight persons; and these only were saved fro...

Were saved by water - While the ark was preparing, only Noah’ s family believed; these amounted to eight persons; and these only were saved from the deluge δι ὑδατος, on the water: all the rest perished in the water; though many of them, while the rains descended, and the waters daily increased, did undoubtedly humble themselves before God, call for mercy, and receive it; but as they had not repented at the preaching of Noah, and the ark was now closed, and the fountains of the great deep broken up, they lost their lives, though God might have extended mercy to their souls.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:21 - The like figure whereunto, etc. The like figure whereunto, etc. - Dr. Macknight has translated this verse so as to make the meaning more clear: By which (water) the antitype baptis...

The like figure whereunto, etc. - Dr. Macknight has translated this verse so as to make the meaning more clear: By which (water) the antitype baptism (not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good conscience towards God) now saveth us also, through the resurrection of Jesus Christ

He remarks that the relative ᾡ being in the neuter gender, its antecedent cannot be κιβωτος, the ark, which is feminine, but ὑδωρ, water, which is neuter

There are many difficulties in this verse; but the simple meaning of the place may be easily apprehended. Noah believed in God; walked uprightly before him, and found grace in his sight; he obeyed him in building the ark, and God made it the means of his salvation from the waters of the deluge. Baptism implies a consecration and dedication of the soul and body to God, the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. He who is faithful to his baptismal covenant, taking God through Christ, by the eternal Spirit, for his portion, is saved here from his sins; and through the resurrection of Christ from the dead, has the well-grounded hope of eternal glory. This is all plain; but was it the deluge, itself, or the ark, or the being saved by that ark from the deluge, that was the antitype of which St. Peter speaks? Noah and his family were saved by water; i.e. it was the instrument of their being saved through the good providence of God. So the water of baptism, typifying the regenerating influence of the Holy Spirit, is the means of salvation to all those who receive this Holy Spirit in its quickening, cleansing efficacy. Now as the waters of the flood could not have saved Noah and his family, had they not made use of the ark; so the water of baptism saves no man, but as it is the means of his getting his heart purified by the Holy Spirit, and typifying to him that purification. The ark was not immersed in the water; had it been so they must all have perished; but it was borne up on the water, and sprinkled with the rain that fell from heaven. This text, as far as I can see, says nothing in behalf of immersion in baptism; but is rather, from the circumstance mentioned above, in favor of sprinkling. In either case, it is not the sprinkling, washing, or cleansing the body, that can be of any avail to the salvation of the soul, but the answer of a good conscience towards God - the internal evidence and external proof that the soul is purified in the laver of regeneration, and the person enabled to walk in newness of life. We are therefore strongly cautioned here, not to rest in the letter, but to look for the substance.

Clarke: 1Pe 3:22 - Who is gone into heaven Who is gone into heaven - Having given the fullest proof of his resurrection from the dead, and of his having accomplished the end for which he came...

Who is gone into heaven - Having given the fullest proof of his resurrection from the dead, and of his having accomplished the end for which he came into the world

Clarke: 1Pe 3:22 - On the right hand of God On the right hand of God - In the place of the highest dignity, honor, and influence The Vulgate, one copy of the Itala, Augustine, Fulgentius, Cass...

On the right hand of God - In the place of the highest dignity, honor, and influence

The Vulgate, one copy of the Itala, Augustine, Fulgentius, Cassiodorus, and Bede, have the following remarkable addition after the above words: Deglutiens mortem, ut vitae aeternae haeredes efficeremur . "Having abolished (swallowed down) death, that we might be made heirs of eternal life."But this addition is found in no Greek copy, nor in any other of the ancient versions

Clarke: 1Pe 3:22 - Angels and authorities and powers Angels and authorities and powers - That is, all creatures and beings, both in the heavens and in the earth, are put under subjection to Jesus Chris...

Angels and authorities and powers - That is, all creatures and beings, both in the heavens and in the earth, are put under subjection to Jesus Christ. He has all power in the heavens and in the earth. He alone can save; and he alone can destroy. None need fear who put their trust in him, as he can do whatsoever he will in behalf of his followers, and has good and evil spirits under his absolute command. Well may his enemies tremble, while his friends exult and sing. He can raise the dead, and save to the uttermost all that come unto the Father through him

If he have all power, if angels and authorities and powers be subject to him, then he can do what he will, and employ whom he will. To raise the dead can be no difficulty to him, because he has power over all things. He created the world; he can destroy it, and he can create it anew. We can conceive nothing too difficult for Omnipotence. This same omnipotent Being is the friend of man. Why then do we not come to him with confidence, and expect the utmost salvation of which our souls and bodies are capable?

Calvin: 1Pe 3:1 - NO PHRASE He proceeds now to another instance of subjection, and bids wives to be subject to their husbands. And as those seemed to have some pretense for shak...

He proceeds now to another instance of subjection, and bids wives to be subject to their husbands. And as those seemed to have some pretense for shaking off the yoke, who were united to unbelieving men, he expressly reminds them of their duty, and brings forward a particular reason why they ought the more carefully to obey, even that they might by their probity allure their husbands to the faith. But if wives ought to obey ungodly husbands, with much more promptness ought they to obey, who have believing husbands.

But it may seem strange that Peter should say, that a husband might be gained to the Lord without the word; for why is it said, that “faith cometh by hearing?” Rom 10:17. To this I reply, that Peter’s words are not to be so understood as though a holy life alone could lead the unbelieving to Christ, but that it softens and pacifies their minds, so that they might have less dislike to religion; for as bad examples create offenses, so good ones afford no small help. Then Peter shews that wives by a holy and pious life could do so much as to prepare their husbands, without speaking to them on religion, to embrace the faith of Christ.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:2 - While they behold 2.While they behold For minds, however alienated from the true faith, are subdued, when they see the good conduct of believers; for as they understoo...

2.While they behold For minds, however alienated from the true faith, are subdued, when they see the good conduct of believers; for as they understood not the doctrine of Christ, they form an estimate of it by our life. It cannot, then, be but that they will commend Christianity, which teaches purity and fear.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:3 - Whose adorning 3.Whose adorning The other part of the exhortation is, that wives are to adorn themselves sparingly and modestly: for we know that they are in this r...

3.Whose adorning The other part of the exhortation is, that wives are to adorn themselves sparingly and modestly: for we know that they are in this respect much more curious and ambitious than they ought to be. Then Peter does not without cause seek to correct in them this vanity. And though he reproves generally sumptuous or costly adorning, yet he points out some things in particular, — that they were not artificially to curl or wreath their hair, as it was usually done by crisping-pins, or otherwise to form it according to the fashion; nor were they to set gold around their head: for these are the things in which excesses especially appear.

It may be now asked, whether the Apostle wholly condemns the use of gold in adorning the body. Were any one to urge these words, it may be said, that he prohibits precious garments no less than gold; for he immediately adds, the putting on of apparel, or, of clothes. But it would be an immoderate strictness wholly to forbid neatness and elegance in clothing. If the material is said to be too sumptuous, the Lord has created it; and we know that skill in art has proceeded from him. Then Peter did not intend to condemn every sort of ornament, but the evil of vanity, to which women are subject. Two things are to be regarded in clothing, usefulness and decency; and what decency requires is moderation and modesty. Were, then, a woman to go forth with her hair wantonly curled and decked, and make an extravagant display, her vanity could not be excused. They who object and say, that to clothe one’s-self in this or that manner is an indifferent thing, in which all are free to do as they please, may be easily confuted; for excessive elegance and superfluous display, in short, all excesses, arise from a corrupted mind. Besides, ambition, pride, affectation of display, and all things of this kind, are not indifferent things. Therefore they whose minds are purified from all vanity, will duly order all things, so as not to exceed moderation.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:4 - But let it be the hidden, man of the heart 4.But let it be the hidden, man of the heart The contrast here ought to be carefully observed. Cato said, that they who are anxiously engaged in ador...

4.But let it be the hidden, man of the heart The contrast here ought to be carefully observed. Cato said, that they who are anxiously engaged in adorning the body, neglect the adorning of the mind: so Peter, in order to restrain this desire in women, introduces a remedy, that they are to devote themselves to the cultivation of their minds. The word heart, no doubt means the whole soul. He at the same time shews in what consists the spiritual adorning of women, even in the incorruptness of a meek and quiet spirit “Incorruptness,” as I think, is set in opposition to things which fade and vanish away, things which serve to adorn the body. Therefore the version of Erasmus departs from the real meaning. In short, Peter means that the ornament of the soul is not like a fading flower, nor consists in vanishing splendor, but is incorruptible. By mentioning quiet and a tranquil spirit, he marks out what especially belongs to women; for nothing becomes them more than a placid and a sedate temper of mind. 36 For we know how outrageous a being is an imperious and a self-willed woman. And further, nothing is more fitted to correct the vanity of which Peter speaks than a placid quietness of spirit.

What follows, that it is in the sight of God of great price, may be referred to the whole previous sentence as well as to the word spirit; the meaning indeed will remain the same. For why do women take so much care to adorn themselves, except that they may turn the eyes of men on themselves? But Peter, on the contrary, bids them to be more anxious for what is before God of a great price.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:5 - NO PHRASE He sets before them the example of pious women, who sought for spiritual adorning rather than outward meretricious ornaments. But he mentions Sarah a...

He sets before them the example of pious women, who sought for spiritual adorning rather than outward meretricious ornaments. But he mentions Sarah above all others, who, having been the mother of all the faithful, is especially worthy of honor and imitation on the part of her sex. Moreover, he returns again to subjection, and confirms it by the example of Sarah, who, according to the words of Moses, called her husband Lord. (Gen 18:12.) God, indeed, does not regard such titles; and it may sometimes be, that one especially petulant and disobedient should use such a word with her tongue; but Peter means, that Sarah usually spoke thus, because she knew that a command had been given her by the Lord, to be subject to her husband. Peter adds, that they who imitated her fidelity would be her daughters, that is, reckoned among the faithful.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:6 - And are not afraid 6.And are not afraid The weakness of the sex causes women to be suspicious and timid, and therefore morose; for they fear lest by their subjection, t...

6.And are not afraid The weakness of the sex causes women to be suspicious and timid, and therefore morose; for they fear lest by their subjection, they should be more reproachfully treated. It was this that Peter seems to have had in view in forbidding them to be disturbed by any fear, as though he had said, “Willingly submit to the authority of your husbands, nor let fear prevent your obedience, as though your condition would be worse, were you to obey.” The words may be more general, “Let them not raise up commotions at home.” For as they are liable to be frightened, they often make much of a little thing, and thus disturb themselves and the family. Others think that the timidity of women, which is contrary to faith, is generally reproved, as though Peter exhorted them to perform the duties of their calling with a courageous and intrepid spirit. However, the first explanation is what I prefer, though the last does not differ much from it. 37

Calvin: 1Pe 3:7 - Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them // Being heirs together (or co-heirs) of the grace of life // That your prayers be not hindered 7.Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them. From husbands he requires prudence; for dominion over their wives is not given them, except on this conditi...

7.Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them. From husbands he requires prudence; for dominion over their wives is not given them, except on this condition, that they exercise authority prudently. Then let husbands remember that they need prudence to do rightly their duty. And doubtless many foolish things must be endured by them, many unpleasant things must be borne with; and they must at the same time beware lest their indulgence should foster folly. Hence the admonition of Peter is not in vain, that the husbands ought to cohabit with them as with a weaker vessel. Part of the prudence which he mentions, is, that the husbands honor their wives. For nothing destroys the friendship of life more than contempt; nor can we really love any but those whom we esteem; for love must be connected with respect.

Moreover, he employs a twofold argument, in order to persuade husbands to treat their wives honourably and kindly. The first is derived from the weakness of the sex; the other, from the honor with which God favors them. These things seem indeed to be in a manner contrary, — that honor ought to be given to wives, because they are weak, and because they excel; but these things well agree together where love exists. It is evident, that God is despised in his gifts, except we honor those on whom he has conferred any excellency. But when we consider that we are members of the same body, we learn to bear with one another, and mutually to cover our infirmities. This is what Paul means when he says that greater honor is given to the weaker members, (1Co 12:23;) even because we are more careful in protecting them from shame. Then Peter does not without reason command that women should be cared for, and that they should be honored with a kind treatment, because they are weak. And then as we more easily forgive children, when they offend through inexperience of age; so the weakness of the female sex ought to make us not to be too rigid and severe towards our wives.

The word vessel, as it is well known, means in Scripture any sort of instrument.

Being heirs together (or co-heirs) of the grace of life Some copies have “of manifold grace;” others, instead of “life,” have the word “living.” Some read “co-heirs” in the dative case, which makes no difference in the sense. A conjunction is put by others between manifold grace and life; which reading is the most suitable. 38 For since the Lord is pleased to bestow in common on husbands and wives the same graces, he invites them to seek an equality in them; and we know that those graces are manifold in which wives are partakers with their husbands. For some belong to the present life, and some to God’s spiritual kingdom. He afterwards adds, that they are co-heirs also of life, which is the chief thing. And though some are strangers to the hope of salvation, yet as it is offered by the Lord to them no less than to their husbands, it is a sufficient honor to the sex.

That your prayers be not hindered For God cannot be rightly called upon, unless our minds be calm and peaceable. Among strifes and contentions there is no place for prayer. Peter indeed addresses the husband and the wife, when he bids them to be at peace one with another, so that they might with one mind pray to God. But we may hence gather a general doctrine — that no one ought to come to God except he is united to his brethren. Then as this reason ought to restrain all domestic quarrels and strifes, in order that each one of the family may pray to God; so in common life it ought to be as it were a bridle to check all contentions. For we are more than insane, if we knowingly and wilfully close up the way to God’s presence by prayer, since this is the only asylum of our salvation.

Some give this explanation, that an intercourse with the wife ought to be sparing and temperate, lest too much indulgence in this respect should prevent attention to prayer, according to that saying of Paul,

“Defraud not one another, unless by consent for a time, that ye may give yourselves to fasting and prayer.” (1Co 7:5.)

But the doctrine of Peter extends wider: and then Paul does not mean that prayers are interrupted by mutual cohabitation. Therefore the explanation which I have given ought to be retained.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:8 - NO PHRASE Now follow general precepts which indiscriminately belong to all. 39 Moreover he summarily mentions some things which are especially necessary to fos...

Now follow general precepts which indiscriminately belong to all. 39 Moreover he summarily mentions some things which are especially necessary to foster friendship and love. The first is, Be ye all of one mind, or, think ye all the same thing. For though friends are at liberty to think differently, yet to do so is a cloud which obscures love; yea, from this seed easily arises hatred. Sympathy (συμπάθεια) extends to all our faculties, when concord exists between us; so that every one condoles with us in adversity as well as rejoices with us in prosperity, so that every one not only cares for himself, but also regards the benefit of others.

What next follows, Love as brethren, belongs peculiarly to the faithful; for where God is known as a Father, there only brotherhood really exists. Be pitiful, or merciful, which is added, means that we are not only to help our brethren and relieve their miseries, but also to bear with their infirmities. In what follows there are two readings in Greek; but what seems to me the most probable is the one I have put as the text; for we know that it is the chief bond to preserve friendship, when every one thinks modestly and humbly of himself; as there is nothing on the other hand which produces more discords than when we think too highly of ourselves. Wisely then does Peter bid us to be humble-minded (ταπεινόφρονες,) lest pride and haughtiness should lead us to despise our neighbors. 40

Calvin: 1Pe 3:9 - Not rendering evil for evil // Knowing that ye are thereunto called 9.Not rendering evil for evil In these words every kind of revenge is forbidden; for in order to preserve love, we must bear with many things. At the...

9.Not rendering evil for evil In these words every kind of revenge is forbidden; for in order to preserve love, we must bear with many things. At the same time he does not speak here of mutual benevolence, but he would have us to endure wrongs, when provoked by ungodly men. And though it is commonly thought that it is an instance of a weak and abject mind, not to avenge injuries, yet it is counted before God as the highest magnanimity. Nor is it indeed enough to abstain from revenge; but Peter requires also that we should pray for those who reproach us; for to bless here means to pray, as it is set in opposition to the second clause. But Peter teaches us in general, that evils are to be overcome by acts of kindness. This is indeed very hard, but we ought to imitate in this case our heavenly Father, who makes his sun to rise on the unworthy. What the sophists imagine to be the meaning, is a futile evasion; for when Christ said, “Love your enemies,” he at the same time confirmed his own doctrine by saying, “That ye might be the children of God.”

Knowing that ye are thereunto called He means that this condition was required of the faithful when they were called by God, that they were not only to be so meek as not to retaliate injuries, but also to bless those who cursed them; and as this condition may seem almost unjust, he calls their attention to the reward; as though he had said, that there is no reason why the faithful should complain, because their wrongs would turn to their own benefit. In short, he shews how much would be the gain of patience; for if we submissively bear injuries, the Lord will bestow on us his blessing.

The verb, κληρονόμειν, to inherit, seems to express perpetuity, as though Peter had said, that the blessing would not be for a short time, but perpetual, if we be submissive in bearing injuries. But God blesses in a way different, from men; for we express our wishes to him, but he confers a blessing on us. And on the other hand, Peter intimates that they who seek to revenge injuries, attempt what will yield them no good, for they thus deprive themselves of God’s blessing.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:10 - For he 10.For he He confirms the last sentence by the testimony of David. The passage is taken from the thirty-fourth Psalm, [Psa 34:12,] where the Spirit t...

10.For he He confirms the last sentence by the testimony of David. The passage is taken from the thirty-fourth Psalm, [Psa 34:12,] where the Spirit testifies that it will be well with all who keep themselves from all evil-doing and wrong-doing. The common feeling indeed favors what is very different; for men think that they expose themselves to the insolence of enemies, if they do not boldly defend themselves. But the Spirit of God promises a happy life to none except to the meek, and those who endure evils; and we cannot be happy except God prospers our ways; and it is the good and the benevolent, and not the cruel and inhuman, that he will favor.

Peter has followed the Greek version, though the difference is but little. David’s words are literally these, — “He who loves life and desires to see good days,” etc. It is indeed a desirable thing, since God has placed us in this world, to pass our time in peace. Then, the way of obtaining this blessing is to conduct ourselves justly and harmlessly towards all.

The first thing he points out are the vices of the tongue; which are to be avoided, so that we may not be contumelious and insolent, nor speak deceitfully and with duplicity. Then he comes to deeds, that we are to injure none, or cause loss to none, but to endeavor to be kind to all, and to exercise the duties of humanity.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:11 - Let him seek peace 11.Let him seek peace It is not enough to embrace it when offered to us, but it ought to be followed when it seems to flee from us. It also often hap...

11.Let him seek peace It is not enough to embrace it when offered to us, but it ought to be followed when it seems to flee from us. It also often happens, that when we seek it as much as we can, others will not grant it to us. On account of these difficulties and hindrances, he bids us to seek and pursue it.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:12 - For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, // But the face of the Lord 12.For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, or, on the righteous. It ought to be a consolation to us, sufficient to mitigate all evils, that...

12.For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, or, on the righteous. It ought to be a consolation to us, sufficient to mitigate all evils, that we are looked upon by the Lord, so that he will bring us help in due time. The meaning then is, that the prosperity which he has mentioned depends on the protection of God; for were not the Lord to care for his people, they would be like sheep exposed to wolves. And that we for little reason raise a clamor, that we suddenly kindle unto wrath, that we burn with the passion of revenge, all this, doubtless, happens, because we do not consider that God cares for us, and because we do not acquiesce in his aid. Thus in vain we shall be taught patience, except our minds are first imbued with this truth, that God exercises such care over us, that he will in due time succor us. When, on the contrary, we are fully persuaded that God defends the cause of the righteous, we shall first attend simply to innocence, and then, when molested and hated by the ungodly, we shall flee to the protection of God. And when he says, that the ears of the Lord are open to our prayers, he encourages us to pray.

But the face of the Lord By this clause he intimates that the Lord will be our avenger, because he will not always suffer the insolence of the ungodly to prevail; and at the same time he shews how it will be, if we seek to defend our life from injuries, even that God will be an adversary to us. But it may, on the other hand, be objected and said, that we experience it daily far otherwise, for the more righteous any one is, and the greater lover of peace he is, the more he is harassed by the wicked. To this I reply, that no one is so attentive to righteousness and peace, but that he sometimes sins in this respect. But it ought to be especially observed, that the promises as to this life do not extend further than as to what is expedient for us to be fulfilled. Hence, our peace with the world is often disturbed, that our flesh may be subdued, in order that we may serve God, and also for other reasons; so that nothing may be a loss to us.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:13 - Who is he that will harm you 13.Who is he that will harm you He further confirms the previous sentence by an argument drawn from common experience. For it happens for the most pa...

13.Who is he that will harm you He further confirms the previous sentence by an argument drawn from common experience. For it happens for the most part, that the ungodly disturb us, or are provoked by us, or that we do not labor to do them good as it behoves us; for they who seek to do good, do even soften minds which are otherwise hard as iron. This very thing is mentioned by Plato in his first book on the Republic, “Injustice,” he says, “causes seditions and hatreds and fightings one with another; but justice, concord and friendship.” 41 However, though this commonly happens, yet it is not always the case; for the children of God, how much soever they may strive to pacify the ungodly by kindness, and shew themselves kind towards all, are yet often assailed undeservedly by many.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:14 - Be not afraid of their terror 14. Hence Peter adds, But if ye suffer for righteousness’ sake The meaning is, that the faithful will do more towards obtaining a quiet life by ...

14. Hence Peter adds, But if ye suffer for righteousness’ sake The meaning is, that the faithful will do more towards obtaining a quiet life by kindness, than by violence and promptitude in taking revenge; but that when they neglect nothing to secure peace, were they to suffer, they are still blessed, because they suffer for the sake of righteousness. Indeed, this latter clause differs much from the judgment of our flesh; but Christ has not without reason thus declared; nor has Peter without reason repeated the sentence from his mouth; for God will at length come as a deliverer, and then openly will appear what now seems incredible, that is, that the miseries of the godly have been blessed when endured with patience.

To suffer for righteousness, means not only to submit to some loss or disadvantage in defending a good cause, but also to suffer unjustly, when any one is innocently in fear among men on account of the fear of God.

Be not afraid of their terror He again points out the fountain and cause of impatience, that we are beyond due measure troubled, when the ungodly rise up against us. For such a dread either disheartens us, or degrades us, or kindles within us a desire for revenge. In the meantime, we do not acquiesce in the defense of God. Then the best remedy for checking the turbulent emotions of our minds will be, to conquer immoderate terrors by trusting in the aid of God.

But Peter no doubt meant to allude to a passage in the eighth chapter of Isaiah; [Isa 8:12;] for when the Jews against the prohibition of God sought to fortify themselves by the aid of the Gentile world, God warned his Prophet not to fear after their example. Peter at the same time seems to have turned “fear” into a different meaning; for it is taken passively by the Prophet, who accused the people of unbelief, because, at a time when they ought to have relied on the aid of God and to have boldly despised all dangers, they became so prostrate and broken down with fear, that they sent to all around them for unlawful help. But Peter takes fear in another sense, as meaning that terror which the ungodly are wont to fill us with by their violence and cruel threatenings. He then departs from the sense in which the word is taken by the Prophet; but in this there is nothing unreasonable; for his object was not to explain the words of the Prophet; he wished only to shew that, nothing is fitter to produce patience than what Isaiah prescribes, even to ascribe to God his honor by recumbing in full confidence on his power.

I do not, however, object, if any one prefers to render Peter’s words thus, Fear ye not their fear; as though he had said, “Be ye not afraid as the unbelieving, or the children of this world are wont to be, because they understand nothing of God’s providence.” But this, as I think, would be a forced explanation. There is, indeed, no need for us to toil much on this point, since Peter here did not intend to explain every word used by the Prophet, but only referred to this one thing, that the faithful will firmly stand, and can never be moved from a right course of duty by any dread or fear, if they will sanctify the Lord.

But this sanctification ought to be confined to the present case. For whence is it that we are overwhelmed with fear, and think ourselves lost, when danger is impending, except that we ascribe to mortal man more power to injure us than to God to save us? God promises that he will be the guardian of our salvation; the ungodly, on the other hand, attempt to subvert it. Unless God’s promise sustain us, do we not deal unjustly with him, and in a manner profane him? Then the Prophet teaches us that we ought to think honourably of the Lord of hosts; for how much soever the ungodly may contrive to destroy us, and whatever power they may possess, he alone is more than sufficiently powerful to secure our safety. 42 Peter then adds, in your hearts. For if this conviction takes full possession of our minds, that the help promised by the Lord is sufficient for us, we shall be well fortified to repel all the fears of unbelief.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:15 - Hope Though this is a new precept, it yet depends on what is gone before, for he requires such constancy in the faithful, as boldly to give a reason for t...

Though this is a new precept, it yet depends on what is gone before, for he requires such constancy in the faithful, as boldly to give a reason for their faith to their adversaries. And this is a part of that sanctification which he had just mentioned; for we then really honor God, when neither fear nor shame hinders us from making a profession of our faith. But Peter does not expressly bid us to assert and proclaim what has been given us by the Lord everywhere, and always and among all indiscriminately, for the Lord gives his people the spirit of discretion, so that they may know when and how far and to whom it is expedient to speak. He bids them only to be ready to give an answer, lest by their sloth and the cowardly fear of the flesh they should expose the doctrine of Christ, by being silent, to the derision of the ungodly. The meaning then is, that we ought to be prompt in avowing our faith, so as to set it forth whenever necessary, lest the unbelieving through our silence should condemn the religion we follow.

But it ought to be noticed, that Peter here does not command us to be prepared to solve any question that may be mooted; for it is not the duty of all to speak on every subject. But it is the general doctrine that is meant, which belongs to the ignorant and the simple. Then Peter had in view no other thing, than that Christians should make it evident to unbelievers that they truly worshipped God, and had a holy and good religion. And in this there is no difficulty, for it would be strange if we could bring nothing to defend our faith when any one made inquiries respecting it. For we ought always to take care that all may know that we fear God, and that we piously and reverently regard his legitimate worship.

This was also required by the state of the times: the Christian name was much hated and deemed infamous; many thought the sect wicked and guilty of many sacrileges. It would have been, therefore, the highest perfidy against God, if, when asked, they had neglected to give a testimony in favor of their religion. And this, as I think, is the meaning of the word apology, which Peter uses, that is, that the Christians were to make it evident to the world that they were far off from every impiety, and did not corrupt true religion, on which account they were suspected by the ignorant.

Hope here is by a metonymy to be taken for faith. Peter, however, as it has been said, does not require them to know how to discuss distinctly and refinedly every article of the faith, but only to shew that their faith in Christ was consistent with genuine piety. And hence we learn how all those abuse the name of Christians, who understand nothing certain respecting their faith, and have nothing to give as an answer for it. But it behoves us again carefully to consider what he says, when he speaks of that hope that is in you; for he intimates that the confession which flows from the heart is alone that which is approved by God; for except faith dwells within, the tongue prattles in vain. It ought then to have its roots within us, so that it may afterwards bring forth the fruit of confession.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:16 - With meekness // Having a good conscience 16.With meekness This is a most necessary admonition; for unless our minds are endued with meekness, contentions will immediately break forth. And me...

16.With meekness This is a most necessary admonition; for unless our minds are endued with meekness, contentions will immediately break forth. And meekness is set in opposition to pride and vain ostentation, and also to excessive zeal. To this he justly adds fear; for where reverence for God prevails, it tames all the ferocity of our minds, and it will especially cause us to speak calmly of God’s mysteries. For contentious disputes arise from this, because many think less honourably than they ought of the greatness of divine wisdom, and are carried away by profane audacity. If, then, we would render approved of God the confession of our faith, all boasting must be put aside, all contention must be relinquished.

Having a good conscience What we say without a corresponding life has but little weight; hence he joins to confession a good conscience. For we see that many are sufficiently ready with their tongue, and prate much, very freely, and yet with no fruit, because the life does not correspond. Besides, the integrity of conscience alone is that which gives us confidence in speaking as we ought; for they who prattle much about the gospel, and whose dissolute life is a proof of their impiety, not only make themselves objects of ridicule, but also expose the truth itself to the slanders of the ungodly. For why did he before bid us to be ready to defend the faith, should any one require from us a reason for it, except that it is our duty to vindicate the truth of God against those false suspicions which the ignorant entertain respecting it. But the defense of the tongue will avail but little, except the life corresponds with it.

He therefore says, that they may be ashamed, who blame your good conversation in Christ, and who speak against you as evil-doers; as though he had said, “If your adversaries have nothing to allege against you, except that you follow Christ, they will at length be ashamed of their malicious wickedness, or at least, your innocence will be sufficient to confute them.”

Calvin: 1Pe 3:17 - For it is better 17.For it is better This belongs not only to what follows but to the whole context. He had spoken of the profession of faith, which at that time was ...

17.For it is better This belongs not only to what follows but to the whole context. He had spoken of the profession of faith, which at that time was attended with great danger; he says now that it is much better, if they sustained any loss in defending a good cause, to suffer thus unjustly than to be punished for their evil deeds. This consolation is understood rather by secret meditation, than by many words. It is what indeed occurs everywhere in profane authors, that there is a sufficient defense in a good conscience, whatever evils may happen, and must be endured. These have spoken courageously; but then the only really bold man is he who looks to God. Therefore Peter added this clause, If the will of God be so For in these words he reminds us, that if we suffer unjustly, it is not by chance, but according to the divine will; and he assumes, that God wills nothing or appoints nothing but for the best reason. Hence the faithful have always this comfort in their miseries, that they know that they have God as their witness, and that they also know that they are led by him to the contest, in order that they may under his protection give a proof of their faith.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:18 - For Christ also // Being put to death in the flesh 18.For Christ also It is another comfort, that if in our afflictions we are conscious of having done well, we suffer according to the example of Chri...

18.For Christ also It is another comfort, that if in our afflictions we are conscious of having done well, we suffer according to the example of Christ; and it hence follows that we are blessed. At the same time he proves, from the design of Christ’s death, that it is by no means consistent with our profession that we should suffer for our evil deeds. For he teaches us that Christ suffered in order to bring us to God. What does this mean, except that we have been thus consecrated to God by Christ’s death, that we may live and die to him?

There are, then, two parts in this sentence; the first is, that persecutions ought to be borne with resignation, because the Son of God shews the way to us; and the other is, that since we have been consecrated to God’s service by the death of Christ, it behoves us to suffer, not for our faults, but for righteousness’ sake.

Here, however, a question may be raised, Does not God chastise the faithful, whenever he suffers them to be afflicted? To this I answer, that it indeed often happens, that God punishes them according to what they deserve; and this is not denied by Peter; but he reminds us what a comfort it is to have our cause connected with God. And how God does not punish sins in them who endure persecution for the sake of righteousness, and in what sense they are said to be innocent, we shall see in the next chapter.

Being put to death in the flesh Now this is a great thing, that we are made conformable to the Son of God, when we suffer without cause; but there is added another consolation, that the death of Christ had a blessed issue; for though he suffered through the weakness of the flesh, he yet rose again through the power of the Spirit. Then the cross of Christ was not prejudicial, nor his death, since life obtained the victory. This was said (as Paul also reminds us in 2Co 4:10) that we may know that we are to bear in our body the dying of Christ, in order that his life may be manifested in us. Flesh here means the outward man; and Spirit means the divine power, by which Christ emerged from death a conqueror.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:19 - By which also 19.By which also Peter added this, that we might know that the vivifying power of the Spirit of which he spoke, was not only put forth as to Christ h...

19.By which also Peter added this, that we might know that the vivifying power of the Spirit of which he spoke, was not only put forth as to Christ himself, but is also poured forth with regard to us, as Paul shews in Rom 5:5. He then says, that Christ did not rise only for himself, but that he made known to others the same power of his Spirit, so that it penetrated to the dead. It hence follows, that we shall not less feel it in vivifying whatever is mortal in us.

But as the obscurity of this passage has produced, as usual, various explanations, I shall first disprove what has been brought forward by some, and secondly, we shall seek its genuine and true meaning.

Common has been the opinion that Christ’s descent into hell is here referred to; but the words mean no such thing; for there is no mention made of the soul of Christ, but only that he went by the Spirit: and these are very different things, that Christ’s soul went, and that Christ preached by the power of the Spirit. Then Peter expressly mentioned the Spirit, that he might take away the notion of what may be called a real presence.

Others explain this passage of the apostles, that Christ by their ministry appeared to the dead, that is, to unbelievers. I, indeed, allow that Christ by means of his apostles went by his Spirit to those who were kept as it were in prison; but this exposition appears incorrect on several accounts: First, Peter says that Christ went to spirits, by which he means souls separated from their bodies, for living men are never called spirits; and secondly, what Peter repeats in the fourth chapter on the same subject, does not admit of such an allegory. Therefore the words must be properly understood of the dead. Thirdly, it seems very strange, that Peter, speaking of the apostles, should immediately, as though forgetting himself, go back to the time of Noah. Certainly this mode of speaking would be most unsuitable. Then this explanation cannot be right.

Moreover, the strange notion of those who think that unbelievers as to the coming of Christ, were after his death freed from their sin, needs no long refutation; for it is an indubitable doctrine of Scripture, that we obtain not salvation in Christ except by faith; then there is no hope left for those who continue to death unbelieving. They speak what is somewhat more probable, who say, that the redemption obtained by Christ availed the dead, who in the time of Noah were long unbelieving, but repented a short time before they were drowned by the deluge. They then understood that they suffered in the flesh the punishment due to their perverseness, and yet were saved by Christ, so that they did not perish for ever. But this interpretation cannot stand; it is indeed inconsistent with the words of the passage, for Peter ascribes salvation only to the family of Noah, and gives over to ruin all who were not within the ark.

I therefore have no doubt but Peter speaks generally, that the manifestation of Christ’s grace was made to godly spirits, and that they were thus endued with the vital power of the Spirit. Hence there is no reason to fear that it will not flow to us. But it may be inquired, Why he puts in prison the souls of the godly after having quitted their bodies? It seems to me that φυλακὴ rather means a watchtower in which watchmen stand for the purpose of watching, or the very act of watching, for it is often so taken by Greek authors; and the meaning would be very appropriate, that godly souls were watching in hope of the salvation promised them, as though they saw it afar off. Nor is there a doubt but that the holy fathers in life, as well as after death, directed their thoughts to this object. But if the word prison be preferred, it would not be unsuitable; for, as while they lived, the Law, according to Paul, (Gal 3:23,) was a sort of prison in which they were kept; so after death they must have felt the same desire for Christ; for the spirit of liberty had not as yet been fully given. Hence this anxiety of expectation was to them a kind of prison.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:20 - When once the long-suffering of God waited Thus far the Apostle’s words seem to agree together, and with the thread of the argument; but what follows is attended with some difficulty; for he...

Thus far the Apostle’s words seem to agree together, and with the thread of the argument; but what follows is attended with some difficulty; for he does not mention the faithful here, but only the unbelieving; and this seems to overturn the preceding exposition. Some have for this reason been led to think that no other thing is said here, but that the unbelieving, who had formerly persecuted the godly, found the Spirit of Christ an accuser, as though Peter consoled the faithful with this argument, that Christ, even when dead, punished them. But their mistake is discovered by what we shall see in the next chapter, that the Gospel was preached to the dead, that they might live according to God in the spirit, which peculiarly applies to the faithful. And it is further certain that he repeats there what he now says. Besides, they have not considered that what Peter meant was especially this, that as the power of the Spirit of Christ shewed itself to be vivifying in him, and was known as such by the dead, so it will be towards us.

Let us, however, see why it is that he mentions only the unbelieving; for he seems to say, that Christ in spirit appeared to those who formerly were unbelieving; but I understand him otherwise, that then the true servants of God were mixed together with the unbelieving, and were almost hidden on account of their number. I allow that the Greek construction is at variance with this meaning, for Peter, if he meant this, ought to have used the genitive case absolute. But as it was not unusual with the Apostles to put one case instead of another, and as we see that Peter here heaps together many things, and no other suitable meaning can be elicited, I have no hesitation in giving this explanation of this intricate passage; so that readers may understand that those called unbelieving are different from those to whom he said the Gospel was preached.

After having then said that Christ was manifested to the dead, he immediately adds, When there were formerly unbelievers; by which he intimated, that it was no injury to the holy fathers that they were almost hidden through the vast number of the ungodly. For he meets, as I think, a doubt, which might have harassed the faithful of that day. They saw almost the whole world filled with unbelievers, that they enjoyed all authority, and that life was in their power. This trial might have shaken the confidence of those who were shut up, as it were, under the sentence of death. Therefore Peter reminds them, that the condition of the fathers was not different, and that though the multitude of the ungodly then covered the whole earth, their life was yet preserved in safety by the power of God.

He then comforted the godly, lest they should be cast down and destroyed because they were so few; and he chose an example the most remarkable in antiquity, even that of the world drowned by the deluge; for then in the common ruin of mankind, the family of Noah alone escaped. And he points out the manner, and says that it was a kind of baptism. There is then in this respect also nothing unsuitable.

The sum of what is said is this, that the world has always been full of unbelievers, but that the godly ought not to be terrified by their vast number; for though Noah was surrounded on every side by the ungodly, and had very few as his friends, he was not yet drawn aside from the right course of his faith. 43

When once the long-suffering of God waited This ought to be applied to the ungodly, whom God’s patience rendered more slothful; for when God deferred his vengeance and did not immediately execute it, the ungodly boldly disregarded all threatenings; but Noah, on the contrary, being warned by God, had the deluge for a long time before his eyes. Hence his assiduity in building the ark; for being terrified by God’s judgment, he shook off all torpidity.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:21 - The like figure whereunto // Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh // But the answer of a good conscience 21.The like figure whereunto I fully think that the relative ought to be read in the dative case, and that it has happened, through a mistake, that ...

21.The like figure whereunto I fully think that the relative ought to be read in the dative case, and that it has happened, through a mistake, that is put, and not . The meaning, however, is not ambiguous, that Noah, saved by water, had a sort of baptism. And this the Apostle mentions, that the likeness between him and us might appear more evident. It has already been said that the design of this clause is to shew that we ought not to be led away by wicked examples from the fear of God, and the right way of salvation, and to mix with the world. This is made evident in baptism, in which we are buried together with Christ, so that, being dead to the world, and to the flesh, we may live to God. On this account, he says that our baptism is an antitype (ἀντίτυπον) to the baptism of Noah, not that Noah’s baptism was the first pattern, and ours an inferior figure, as the word is taken in the Epistle to the Hebrews, where the ceremonies of the law are said to be antitypes of heavenly things, (Heb 9:9.) Greek writers apply the same word to sacraments, so that, when they speak of the mystical bread of the holy Supper, they call it the antitype. But here there is no comparison made between the greater and the less; the Apostle only means that there is a likeness, and as they commonly say, a correspondence. Perhaps it might more properly be said to be correspondency, (ἀντίστροφον,) as Aristotle makes Dialectics to be the antistrophè of Rhetoric. But we need not labor about words, when there is an agreement about the thing itself. As Noah, then, obtained life through death, when in the ark, he was enclosed not otherwise than as it were in the grave, and when the whole world perished, he was preserved together with his small family; so at this day, the death which is set forth in baptism, is to us an entrance into life, nor can salvation be hoped for, except we be separated from the world.

Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh This was added, because it might be that the greatest part of men would profess the name of Christ; and so it is with us, almost all are introduced into the church by baptism. Thus, what he had said before would not be appropriate, that few at this day are saved by baptism, as God saved only eight by the ark. This objection Peter anticipates, when he testifies that he speaks not of the naked sign, but that the effect must also be connected with it, as though he had said, that what happened in the age of Noah would always be the case, that mankind would rush on to their own destruction, but that the Lord would in a wonderful way deliver His very small flock.

We now see what this connection means; for some one might object and say, “Our baptism is widely different from that of Noah, for it happens that most are at this day baptized.” To this he replies, that the external symbol is not sufficient, except baptism be received really and effectually: and the reality of it will be found only in a few. It hence follows that we ought carefully to see how men commonly act when we rely on examples, and that we ought not to fear though we may be few in number.

But the fanatics, such as Schuencfeldius, absurdly pervert this testimony, while they seek to take away from sacraments all their power and effect. For Peter did not mean here to teach that Christ’s institution is vain and inefficacious, but only to exclude hypocrites from the hope of salvation, who, as far as they can, deprave and corrupt baptism. Moreover, when we speak of sacraments, two things are to be considered, the sign and the thing itself. In baptism the sign is water, but the thing is the washing of the soul by the blood of Christ and the mortifying of the flesh. The institution of Christ includes these two things. Now that the sign appears often inefficacious and fruitless, this happens through the abuse of men, which does not take away the nature of the sacrament. Let us then learn not to tear away the thing signified from the sign. We must at the same time beware of another evil, such as prevails among the Papists; for as they distinguish not as they ought between the thing and the sign, they stop at the outward element, and on that fix their hope of salvation. Therefore the sight of the water takes away their thoughts from the blood of Christ and the power of the Spirit. They do not regard Christ as the only author of all the blessings therein offered to us; they transfer the glory of his death to the water, they tie the secret power of the Spirit to the visible sign.

What then ought we to do? Not to separate what has been joined together by the Lord. We ought to acknowledge in baptism a spiritual washing, we ought to embrace therein the testimony of the remission of sin and the pledge of our renovation, and yet so as to leave to Christ his own honor, and also to the Holy Spirit; so that no part of our salvation should be transferred to the sign. Doubtless when Peter, having mentioned baptism, immediately made this exception, that it is not the putting off of the filth of the flesh, he sufficiently shewed that baptism to some is only the outward act, and that the outward sign of itself avails nothing.

But the answer of a good conscience The word question, or questioning, is to be taken here for “answer,” or testimony. Now Peter briefly defines the efficacy and use of baptism, when he calls attention to conscience, and expressly requires that confidence which can sustain the sight of God and can stand before his tribunal. For in these words he teaches us that baptism in its main part is spiritual, and then that it includes the remission of sins and renovation of the old man; for how can there be a good and pure conscience until our old man is reformed, and we be renewed in the righteousness of God? and how can we answer before God, unless we rely on and are sustained by a gratuitous pardon of our sins? In short, Peter intended to set forth the effect of baptism, that no one might glory in a naked and dead sign, as hypocrites are wont to do.

But we must notice what follows, by the resurrection of Jesus Christ By these words he teaches us that we are not to cleave to the element of water, and that what is thereby typified flows from Christ alone, and is to be sought from him. Moreover, by referring to the resurrection, he has regard to the doctrine which he had taught before, that Christ was vivified by the Spirit; for the resurrection was victory over death and the completion of our salvation. We hence learn that the death of Christ is not excluded, but is included in his resurrection. We then cannot otherwise derive benefit from baptism, than by having all our thoughts fixed on the death and the resurrection of Christ.

Calvin: 1Pe 3:22 - Who is on the right hand of God 22.Who is on the right hand of God He recommends to us the ascension of Christ unto heaven, lest our eyes should seek him in the world; and this belo...

22.Who is on the right hand of God He recommends to us the ascension of Christ unto heaven, lest our eyes should seek him in the world; and this belongs especially to faith. He commends to our notice his session on the Father’s right hand, lest we should doubt his power to save us. And what his sitting at the right hand of the Father means, we have elsewhere explained, that is, that Christ exercises supreme power everywhere as God’s representative. And an explanation of this is what follows, angels being made subject to him; and he adds powers and authorities only for the sake of amplification, for angels are usually designated by such words. It was then Peter’s object to set forth by these high titles the sovereignty of Christ.

Defender: 1Pe 3:1 - conversation of the wives This promise must apply especially to those wives who become Christians after they have married. Christian women who have willfully married unbeliever...

This promise must apply especially to those wives who become Christians after they have married. Christian women who have willfully married unbelievers despite God's prohibition against it have no valid claim on God's answer (1Co 7:39; 2Co 6:14). However, God is merciful and forgiving when there is true repentance and confession."

Defender: 1Pe 3:2 - behold "Behold" here connotes "closely behold" (see note on 1Pe 2:12)."

"Behold" here connotes "closely behold" (see note on 1Pe 2:12)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:3 - adorning Although male modesty may not have been a problem in the days of the apostles, the principle of modesty in dress and ornamentation would need to be ur...

Although male modesty may not have been a problem in the days of the apostles, the principle of modesty in dress and ornamentation would need to be urged on Christian men as well as women today, especially in these days of flamboyancy and stress on physical attributes (1Ti 2:9)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:4 - meek and quiet spirit Compare the description of the "virtuous woman" (Proverbs 31:10-31, especially Pro 31:30)."

Compare the description of the "virtuous woman" (Proverbs 31:10-31, especially Pro 31:30)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:6 - daughters ye are This phrase means literally "have become daughters" of Sara, in a spiritual sense.

This phrase means literally "have become daughters" of Sara, in a spiritual sense.

Defender: 1Pe 3:6 - amazement That is, with any "hysterical fears," this often being a characteristic of shallow-spirited, self-oriented women, who have not the deep faith of Sara ...

That is, with any "hysterical fears," this often being a characteristic of shallow-spirited, self-oriented women, who have not the deep faith of Sara (Heb 11:11)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:7 - unto the wife See Col 3:19; Pro 31:11, Pro 31:28.

Defender: 1Pe 3:7 - heirs together Although the husband and wife have been created for very specific roles in the family, the church, and society in general, and although neither will f...

Although the husband and wife have been created for very specific roles in the family, the church, and society in general, and although neither will find real fulfillment in life if they rebel against those roles, they must always remember that spiritually they are equals before God. Both were created "in the image of God" (Gen 1:27) and are "heirs together" of God's grace.

Defender: 1Pe 3:7 - prayers be not hindered It is noteworthy that one important reason for unanswered prayer may be poor home relationships."

It is noteworthy that one important reason for unanswered prayer may be poor home relationships."

Defender: 1Pe 3:8 - one mind That "one mind" should be the mind of Christ (Phi 2:2, Phi 2:5).

That "one mind" should be the mind of Christ (Phi 2:2, Phi 2:5).

Defender: 1Pe 3:8 - compassion This phrase suggests "sympathizing with" one another.

This phrase suggests "sympathizing with" one another.

Defender: 1Pe 3:8 - love as brethren This phrase means, literally, "loving the brethren" (1Jo 3:14).

This phrase means, literally, "loving the brethren" (1Jo 3:14).

Defender: 1Pe 3:8 - pitiful This word can be translated "tender-hearted" (Eph 4:32).

This word can be translated "tender-hearted" (Eph 4:32).

Defender: 1Pe 3:8 - courteous "Courteous" means "being humble of mind" (Col 3:12)."

"Courteous" means "being humble of mind" (Col 3:12)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:9 - railing Neither evil deeds nor railing words should be a Christian's response.

Neither evil deeds nor railing words should be a Christian's response.

Defender: 1Pe 3:9 - called We are called to follow Christ and the example He has set for us (1Pe 2:9, 1Pe 2:21-23)."

We are called to follow Christ and the example He has set for us (1Pe 2:9, 1Pe 2:21-23)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:10 - love life 1Pe 3:10-12 are essentially quoted from Psa 34:12-16. Thus, a controlled tongue is a secret contribution to a long and happy life."

1Pe 3:10-12 are essentially quoted from Psa 34:12-16. Thus, a controlled tongue is a secret contribution to a long and happy life."

Defender: 1Pe 3:14 - happy are ye Here Peter echoes one of the Lord's beatitudes in the sermon on the mount (Mat 5:10; 1Pe 4:12-14).

Here Peter echoes one of the Lord's beatitudes in the sermon on the mount (Mat 5:10; 1Pe 4:12-14).

Defender: 1Pe 3:14 - terror See Isa 8:12, Isa 8:13, which Peter here quotes and applies. In context, Isaiah was encouraging the Jews in light of an impending invasion by the Assy...

See Isa 8:12, Isa 8:13, which Peter here quotes and applies. In context, Isaiah was encouraging the Jews in light of an impending invasion by the Assyrian armies, along with a hostile confederacy uniting Syria and the northern kingdom of Israel against Judah. Peter appropriated God's promise as applying also to the Christians of any period who might be facing persecution."

Defender: 1Pe 3:15 - answer "Answer" is the Greek apologia, from which we get our word "apologetics," meaning the careful, logical defense of the Christian faith against the atta...

"Answer" is the Greek apologia, from which we get our word "apologetics," meaning the careful, logical defense of the Christian faith against the attacks of its adversaries, showing its validity as the true saving gospel of God, our Creator and Savior. In effect, Peter is admonishing believers to be always prepared to give an apologetic for the faith, especially when confronted by those who deny it and would destroy it if they could. This surely means that there is an effective apologetic that can be given, and it is each Christian's responsibility to study (2Ti 2:15) and be ready to give it when needed. In contrast, the unbeliever is "without excuse" (Rom 1:20), "without an apologetic." His faith is strictly based on credulity and wishful thinking, not historical and scientific evidence like that for the Christian faith. On the "defense" (same word) of the gospel, see note on Phi 1:7, Phi 1:17.

Defender: 1Pe 3:15 - a reason "Reason" is the Greek logos, from which we derive our word "logical." We do, indeed, have logical, factual reasons for our hope in Christ (on "hope," ...

"Reason" is the Greek logos, from which we derive our word "logical." We do, indeed, have logical, factual reasons for our hope in Christ (on "hope," note 1Pe 1:3, 1Pe 1:13, 1Pe 1:21).

Defender: 1Pe 3:15 - meekness and fear Note that our apologetic is to be given not with boasting or pride, but "with meekness and fear" (compare 2Ti 2:24-26). The Christian should not be ig...

Note that our apologetic is to be given not with boasting or pride, but "with meekness and fear" (compare 2Ti 2:24-26). The Christian should not be ignorant in his answer, but neither should he be arrogant."

Defender: 1Pe 3:18 - once suffered For "once suffered," a better connotation is "once for all died."

For "once suffered," a better connotation is "once for all died."

Defender: 1Pe 3:18 - quickened by the spirit "Quickened by the Spirit" means "alive in spirit." Although His body was in the tomb, His spirit (which could be understood as, essentially, the Holy ...

"Quickened by the Spirit" means "alive in spirit." Although His body was in the tomb, His spirit (which could be understood as, essentially, the Holy Spirit, who is also called the Spirit of Christ), descended "into the lower parts of the earth" (Eph 4:9)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:19 - preached While in Hades in the Spirit, He "preached" - that is, "proclaimed" His victory over death and Hades (Mat 16:18; Col 2:15; Rev 1:18; Luk 4:18). Note t...

While in Hades in the Spirit, He "preached" - that is, "proclaimed" His victory over death and Hades (Mat 16:18; Col 2:15; Rev 1:18; Luk 4:18). Note that "hell" in these verses is the Greek Hades, the great pit at the center of the earth where lost souls and many rebellious angels are confined. Before Christ's resurrection, the souls of believers were also resting there, but these "captives" were "delivered" by Christ when He rose from the dead (Eph 4:8-10). The Greek word for "preached" here is not the word for "preached the gospel" (euaggelizo) as in 1Pe 1:12, 1Pe 1:25; 1Pe 4:6, but rather kerusso, which means "proclaimed" (Luk 12:3) or "published" (Luk 8:39). Christ was not giving a second chance, as it were, to those who had died in unbelief, for there is no second chance after death (Heb 9:27). Rather, He was proclaiming victory over Satan and his hosts.

Defender: 1Pe 3:19 - spirits These "spirits in prison" almost certainly were the evil spirits who had sinned in the days of Noah by trying to corrupt and control all flesh (Gen 6:...

These "spirits in prison" almost certainly were the evil spirits who had sinned in the days of Noah by trying to corrupt and control all flesh (Gen 6:1-4, Gen 6:12). Whenever the word "spirits" is used in the plural and not clearly indicated otherwise (as in Heb 12:23 and 1Co 14:32), it always refers to supernatural beings, or angels. In support of this meaning, note that there are thirty such occurrences in the New Testament, with only two, as noted above, referring to spirits of men. At least twenty-six of these thirty occurrences refer to evil spirits, which strongly indicates that to be the meaning here.

Defender: 1Pe 3:19 - in prison The "prison" where these evil spirits are confined is identified elsewhere by Peter as Tartaros, the Greek name translated "hell" in 2Pe 2:4. This is,...

The "prison" where these evil spirits are confined is identified elsewhere by Peter as Tartaros, the Greek name translated "hell" in 2Pe 2:4. This is, evidently, a special compartment of Hades where these "angels that sinned" are confined in "chains of darkness, to be reserved unto judgment" (2Pe 2:4). They are also described in similar terms by Jude (Jud 1:6)."

Defender: 1Pe 3:20 - days of Noah It was "in the days of Noah" when this flagrant disobedience of the angels took place, resulting in this severe punishment.

It was "in the days of Noah" when this flagrant disobedience of the angels took place, resulting in this severe punishment.

Defender: 1Pe 3:20 - was a preparing During the "days while the ark was a preparing," Noah preached righteousness to the demon-controlled people of his generation (2Pe 2:4), and God was "...

During the "days while the ark was a preparing," Noah preached righteousness to the demon-controlled people of his generation (2Pe 2:4), and God was "longsuffering," but none heeded, and only eight were spared in the ark when the flood came.

Defender: 1Pe 3:20 - saved by water These eight (Noah, his three sons, and the four wives) were "saved by water" (this could also be translated "through water") in the sense that they we...

These eight (Noah, his three sons, and the four wives) were "saved by water" (this could also be translated "through water") in the sense that they were saved from the deadly moral and spiritual pollution that had engulfed the antediluvian world after the demonic invasion. The waters bore up their Ark of safety, even as these same waters destroyed the old world and their old lives."

Defender: 1Pe 3:21 - like figure Thus both the Flood, with its ark of safety, and baptism, with its emergence from the waters of burial, are like figures of the wonderful reality of t...

Thus both the Flood, with its ark of safety, and baptism, with its emergence from the waters of burial, are like figures of the wonderful reality of the death and resurrection of Christ, as well as the death to sin and new life of the believer. Baptism in and of itself would, at most, be only a bath for washing off the filth of the flesh, but when experienced as a testimony of one's saving faith in the atoning death and justifying resurrection of the Lord Jesus, it becomes "the answer of [appeal for] a good conscience" toward God (Heb 9:14), secured forever by Christ's resurrection."

Defender: 1Pe 3:22 - right hand of God This is the last of the sixteen New Testament references to Christ now being at the right hand of the Father. See notes on Psa 16:11, where the first ...

This is the last of the sixteen New Testament references to Christ now being at the right hand of the Father. See notes on Psa 16:11, where the first reference occurs.

Defender: 1Pe 3:22 - subject unto him See Eph 1:20, Eph 1:21."

TSK: 1Pe 3:1 - ye // obey // they // won ye : Gen 3:16; Est 1:16-20; Rom 7:2 *Gr: 1Co 11:3, 1Co 14:34; Eph 5:22-24, Eph 5:33; Col 3:18; 1Ti 2:11, 1Ti 2:12; Tit 2:3-6 obey : 1Pe 1:22, 1Pe 4:17...

TSK: 1Pe 3:2 - behold // with behold : 1Pe 3:16, 1Pe 1:15, 1Pe 2:12; Phi 1:27, Phi 3:20; 1Ti 4:12; 2Pe 3:11 with : 1Pe 3:5, 1Pe 3:6, 1Pe 3:15; Eph 5:33, Eph 6:5; Col 3:22

TSK: 1Pe 3:3 - adorning let // that adorning let : 1Ti 2:9, 1Ti 2:10; Tit 2:3-15; Rom 12:2 that : Gen 24:22, Gen 24:47, Gen 24:53; Exo 3:22, Exo 32:2, Exo 33:4, Exo 35:22, Exo 38:8; 2Ki ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:4 - the hidden // which is not // a meek // quiet // which is in the hidden : Psa 45:13, Psa 51:6; Mat 23:26; Luk 11:40; Rom 2:29, Rom 6:6, Rom 7:22; 2Co 4:16; Eph 4:22-24; Col 3:3, Col 3:9, Col 3:10 which is not : ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:5 - the holy // who // adorned the holy : Pro 31:10,Pro 31:30; Luk 8:2, Luk 8:3; Act 1:14, Act 9:36; 1Ti 2:10, 1Ti 5:10; Tit 2:3, Tit 2:4 who : 1Sa 2:1; Jer 49:11; Luk 2:37; 1Ti 2:1...

TSK: 1Pe 3:6 - as Sara // daughters // and as Sara : Gen 18:12 daughters : Gr. children, Rom 9:7-9; Gal 4:22-26 and : 1Pe 3:14, 1Pe 3:15; Gen 18:15; Isa 57:11; Dan 3:16-18; Mat 26:69-75; Act 4:...

TSK: 1Pe 3:7 - ye // giving // heirs // that ye : Gen 2:23, Gen 2:24; Pro 5:15-19; Mal 2:14-16; Mat 19:3-9; 1Co 7:3; Col 3:19; Eph 5:25-28, Eph 5:33 giving : 1Co 12:22-24; 1Th 4:4 heirs : Eph 3:6...

TSK: 1Pe 3:8 - be // having // love as brethren // pitiful // courteous be : Act 2:1, Act 4:32; Rom 12:16, Rom 15:5; 1Co 1:10; Phi 3:16 having : Zec 7:9; Mat 18:33; Luk 10:33; Rom 12:15; 1Co 12:26; Jam 2:13, Jam 3:17 love ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:9 - rendering // called // that rendering : 1Pe 2:20-23; Pro 17:13, Pro 20:22; Mat 5:39, Mat 5:44; Luk 6:27-29; Rom 12:14, Rom 12:17, Rom 12:19-21; 1Co 4:12, 1Co 4:13; Eph 4:32; 1Th ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:10 - he // love // see // refrain // speak he : Psa 34:12-16 love : Deu 32:47; Job 2:4; Pro 3:2, Pro 3:18, Pro 4:22, Pro 8:35; Mat 19:17; Mar 8:35; Joh 12:25 see : Job 7:7, Job 7:8, Job 9:25, J...

TSK: 1Pe 3:11 - eschew // do // seek eschew : Job 1:1, Job 2:3, Job 28:28; Psa 34:14, Psa 37:27; Pro 3:7, Pro 16:6, Pro 16:17; Isa 1:16, Isa 1:17; Mat 6:13; Joh 17:15 do : Psa 125:4; Mat ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:12 - the eyes // his ears // but // against the eyes : Deu 11:12; 2Ch 16:9; Psa 11:4; Pro 15:3; Zec 4:10 his ears : 2Ch 7:15; Psa 65:2; Pro 15:8, Pro 15:29; Joh 9:31; Jam 5:16 but : Lev 17:10, L...

TSK: 1Pe 3:13 - who // followers who : Pro 16:7; Rom 8:28, Rom 13:3 followers : Psa 38:20; Pro 15:9; 1Co 14:1; Eph 5:1; 1Th 5:15; 1Ti 5:10; 3Jo 1:11

TSK: 1Pe 3:14 - if // and be if : 1Pe 2:19, 1Pe 2:20, 1Pe 4:13-16; Jer 15:15; Mat 5:10-12, Mat 10:18-22, Mat 10:39, Mat 16:25, Mat 19:29; Mar 8:35, Mar 10:29; Luk 6:22, Luk 6:23; ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:15 - sanctify // and be // a reason // the hope // with // fear sanctify : Num 20:12, Num 27:14; Isa 5:16, Isa 29:23 and be : Psa 119:46; Jer 26:12-16; Dan 3:16-18; Amo 7:14-17; Mat 10:18-20; Luk 21:14, Luk 21:15; ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:16 - a good // whereas // falsely // good a good : 1Pe 3:21, 1Pe 2:19; Act 24:16; Rom 9:1; 2Co 1:12, 2Co 4:2; 1Ti 1:5, 1Ti 1:19; 2Ti 1:3; Heb 9:14, Heb 13:18 whereas : 1Pe 2:12; Tit 2:8 falsel...

TSK: 1Pe 3:17 - if // suffer if : 1Pe 4:19; Mat 26:39, Mat 26:42; Act 21:14 suffer : 1Pe 3:14

TSK: 1Pe 3:18 - Christ // the just // that // being // but Christ : 1Pe 2:21-24, 1Pe 4:1; Isa 53:4-6; Rom 5:6-8, Rom 8:3; 2Co 5:21; Gal 1:4, Gal 3:13; Tit 2:14; Heb 9:26, Heb 9:28 the just : Zec 9:9; Mat 27:19...

TSK: 1Pe 3:19 - By which // in By which : 1Pe 1:11, 1Pe 1:12, 1Pe 4:6; Neh 9:30; Rev 19:10 in : Isa 42:7, Isa 49:9, Isa 61:1; Rev 20:7

TSK: 1Pe 3:20 - sometime // the longsuffering // the days // while // wherein // by sometime : Gen 6:3, Gen 6:5, Gen 6:13 the longsuffering : Isa 30:18; Rom 2:4, Rom 2:5, Rom 9:22; 2Pe 3:15 the days : Mat 24:37-39; Luk 17:26-30 while ...

TSK: 1Pe 3:21 - like // baptism // the putting // the answer // by like : Rom 5:14; 1Co 4:6; Heb 9:24 *Gr: Heb 11:19 baptism : Mat 28:19; Mar 16:16; Act 2:38, Act 22:16; Rom 6:3-6; 1Co 12:13; Gal 3:27; Eph 5:26; Col 2...

TSK: 1Pe 3:22 - is gone // is on // angels is gone : Mar 16:19; Act 1:11, Act 2:34-36, Act 3:21; Heb 6:20, Heb 8:1, Heb 9:24 is on : Psa 110:1; Mat 22:44; Mar 12:36; Luk 20:42; Rom 8:34; Eph 1:...

kecilkan semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Kata/Frasa (per Ayat)

Poole: 1Pe 3:1 - To your own husbands // own // That if any obey not the word // They also may without the word // Be won 1Pe 3:1-7 The apostle teacheth the duty of wives and husbands, 1Pe 3:8-13 exhorting all men to unity and love, and to return good for evil, 1Pe 3...

1Pe 3:1-7 The apostle teacheth the duty of wives and husbands,

1Pe 3:8-13 exhorting all men to unity and love, and to return good

for evil,

1Pe 3:14-18 to suffer boldly for righteousness’ sake, and to give

a reason of their hope with meekness and fear;

taking especial care to suffer, as Christ did, for

well-doing, and not for evil-doing.

1Pe 3:19,20 The preaching of Christ by his Spirit to the old world.

1Pe 3:21,22 After what manner Christian baptism saveth us.

To your own husbands this he adds both to mitigate the difficulty of the duty,

subjection in that they were their

own husbands to whom they were to be subject, and likewise to bound and circumscribe their obedience, that it was to be only to their own husbands, not to others; and so while he persuades them to subjection, he cautions them against unchastity.

That if any obey not the word the word of the gospel. He exhorts not only them that had believing husbands, but unbelieving ones, to be in subjection to them.

They also may without the word: not that they could be converted to Christ without the knowledge of the word, when faith cometh by hearing, Rom 10:17 , but that they who either would not endure their wives’ instructing them, or who had before rejected the word, yet, by seeing the effects and fruits of it in their wives, might be brought to have good thoughts of it, and thereby be the more prepared for the hearing of it, whereby faith might be wrought in them.

Be won or gained, viz. to Christ and his church: the same metaphor Paul useth, 1Co 9:19-21 Phi 3:8 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:2 - Chaste conversation // Coupled with fear Chaste conversation free from all manner of impurities, and any thing contrary to the marriage covenant. Coupled with fear such a fear or reverence...

Chaste conversation free from all manner of impurities, and any thing contrary to the marriage covenant.

Coupled with fear such a fear or reverence of your husbands, whereby out of the fear of God, and conscience of his command, you give them all due respect, and do not willingly displease them. See Eph 5:1-33 ; subjection is required, Eph 5:22 , and fear, Eph 5:33 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:3 - Let it not be Let it not be let it not be chiefly, or not so much the adorning of the outward man as the inward; the negative here is to be taken as a comparative,...

Let it not be let it not be chiefly, or not so much the adorning of the outward man as the inward; the negative here is to be taken as a comparative, as Exo 16:8 Luk 14:12 . The apostle doth not absolutely condemn all kind of ornaments, or rich attire, which we find used sometimes by the godly themselves in the Scripture, Gen 24:22,30 Es 5:1 ; compared with Psa 45:9,13 , where the spiritual ornaments of Christ’ s spouse are set forth by terms taken from the external ornaments of Solomon’ s wife; and Eze 16:12 , these things are spoken of as God’ s gifts. But he taxeth all vanity, levity, immoderate sumptuousness or luxury in apparel, and bodily ornaments in women, (or men), whatsoever is above their place and condition in the world, or above their estate and ability; such as proceeds from any lust, (pride, wantonness, &c.), or tends to the provoking or cherishing any, or is accompanied with the neglecting or slighting of inward beauty and spiritual ornaments.

Poole: 1Pe 3:4 - The hidden man of the heart // In that which is not corruptible // the ornament of a meek // Even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit // Which // Is in the sight of God // Of great price The hidden man of the heart the inward man, Rom 7:22 2Co 4:16 ; either the soul in opposition to the body, or the image of God, and graces of his Spi...

The hidden man of the heart the inward man, Rom 7:22 2Co 4:16 ; either the soul in opposition to the body, or the image of God, and graces of his Spirit in the soul, called elsewhere the new man, and opposed to natural corruption, or the old man, Eph 4:24 Col 3:9,10 .

In that which is not corruptible: this relates to what follows,

the ornament of a meek & c., and is opposed to those external ornaments before mentioned, which are of a fading, perishing nature, whereas this is constant and durable: and therefore women who are more apt to be overmuch pleased with external dresses, and bodily ornaments, are exhorted rather to enrich and beautify their souls with Divine graces, than their bodies with gaudy clothes.

Even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit: this notes the particular grace or graces (parts of the new man) in which the spiritual beauty and adorning of women’ s souls consists; and either these two words, meek and quiet, are but indifferent expressions of the same grace; or, by meekness may be meant gentleness, easiness and sweetness of spirit, in opposition to moroseness, frowardness, pride, passion, &c.; and by quietness, a peaceable, still, modest temper, in opposition to pragmaticalness, talkativeness, clamorousness. These two usually go in conjunction together, and the latter is the effect of the former: see 1Ti 2:9-12 .

Which: either this refers to spirit, or to the whole sentence, the ornament of a meek, & c., but the sense is still the same.

Is in the sight of God who can best judge, (as looking to the inner man, which is not obvious to the eyes of others), and whose judgment is most to be valued: here God’ s judgment is opposed to the judgment of vain women, who think to commend themselves to others by outward bravery, and of a vain world, which esteems such things.

Of great price: the excellency of grace and spiritual ornaments is set in opposition to gold and costly apparel: q.d. If women will be fine that they may appear beautiful, let them choose the best ornaments, those of the mind and heart, a meek and quiet spirit, which are precious in the sight of God himself, rather than these external ones, which serve only to draw men’ s eyes toward them.

Poole: 1Pe 3:5 - Holy women // Who trusted in God // Adorned themselves Holy women and therefore worthy of imitation. Who trusted in God whose only hope was in God, and therefore their care to please him. Adorned thems...

Holy women and therefore worthy of imitation.

Who trusted in God whose only hope was in God, and therefore their care to please him.

Adorned themselves viz. with a meek and quiet spirit, counting that the best ornament.

Poole: 1Pe 3:6 - Even as Sara // Calling him lord // Whose daughters ye are // Ye are // As long as ye do well // And are not afraid with any amazement Even as Sara after ger name was changed from Sarai, my lady, to Sarah, simply a lady or princess, because kings were to come of her, Gen 17:15,16 : y...

Even as Sara after ger name was changed from Sarai, my lady, to Sarah, simply a lady or princess, because kings were to come of her, Gen 17:15,16 : yet even then she obeyed Abraham; and this is spoken in commendation of her obedience.

Calling him lord not merely in compliment, but in reality, hereby acknowledging his authority and her own subjection.

Whose daughters ye are not only according to the flesh, but spiritually, according to the promise.

Ye are either ye are made or become, viz. by imitation of her faith and holiness, as well as ye are by kindred and succession; or, ye are declared and known to be, as the phrase is elsewhere used, Joh 15:8 .

As long as ye do well follow her in good works, 1Ti 2:10 .

And are not afraid with any amazement or, afraid of any amazement, any thing frightful, or which might terrify you, taking amazement for the object or cause or fear, as 1Pe 3:14 Psa 53:5 Pro 3:25 ; and the sense may be, either, so long as ye perform your duty with a resolute mind, and keep from that which is contrary to your faith; or, as long as you subject yourselves to your husbands willingly, cheerfuly, and without slavish fear of being losers by your obedience, and faring the worse for your patience and submission.

Poole: 1Pe 3:7 - Dwell with them // According to knowledge // Giving honour unto the wife // As unto the weaker vessel // And as being heirs together // Of the grace of life // That your prayers be not hindered Dwell with them perform all matrimonial duties to them; by a synecdoche, all the duties of that relation are contained under this one of cohabitation...

Dwell with them perform all matrimonial duties to them; by a synecdoche, all the duties of that relation are contained under this one of cohabitation.

According to knowledge either, according to that knowledge of the Divine will, which by the gospel ye have obtained; or, prudently and wisely, and as becomes those that understand their duty.

Giving honour unto the wife not despising them because of their weakness, or using them as slaves, but respecting them, caring for them, as Mat 15:6 1Ti 5:3using them gently, covering their infirmities.

As unto the weaker vessel weaker than the husbands, and that both in body and mind, as women usually are. In Scripture any instrument is called a vessel, and the wife is here called so, as being not only an ornament, but a help to the husband and family, Gen 2:18 . This he adds as a reason why the husband should give honour to the wife, viz. her being the weaker vessel; weak vessels must be gently handled; the infirmities of children bespeak their pardon when they offend; and those members of the body which we think less honourable, on them we bestow more abundant honour, 1Co 12:23 . It is a part of that prudence according to which men should dwell with their wives, to have the more regard to them because of their infirmities, (in bearing with them and hiding them), lest they should be discouraged, if they find their weakness makes them contemptible.

And as being heirs together: another reason why husbands should give honour to their wives, viz. because though by nature they are weak and unequal to their husbands, yet they are equal to them in respect of their being called to the same grace and glory, there being neither male nor female in Christ, Gal 3:28 .

Of the grace of life i.e. eternal life, which is the gift of grace; or, is to be given out of grace.

That your prayers be not hindered either, that ye be not diverted and hindered from praying; or, that the efficacy of your prayers be not hindered, viz. by those contentions and differences which are like to arise, if you do not dwell with your own wives according to knowledge, and give them the honour that belongs to them.

Poole: 1Pe 3:8 - Be ye all of one mind // Having compassion one of another // Love as brethren // Be pitiful // Be courteous Be ye all of one mind either, be of one mind in the things of faith, and then this implies the consent of the understanding, and the next, that of th...

Be ye all of one mind either, be of one mind in the things of faith, and then this implies the consent of the understanding, and the next, that of the affections; or, be united both in faith and affection: see Rom 12:16 2Co 13:11 Phi 4:2 .

Having compassion one of another: mutually affected with each other’ s good or evil, Rom 12:15 Heb 10:34 13:3 . This he joins with the other as the consequent of it; they that are united in faith and love are of the same body; and where one member suffers, the rest suffer, 1Co 12:26 .

Love as brethren viz. in Christ: see 1Pe 3:17 .

Be pitiful ready to show mercy, of a merciful disposition, Eph 4:32 Col 3:12 .

Be courteous kind, affable, humane, of a sweet conversation, in opposition to sourness and moroseness: the same word is used, Act 27:3 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:9 - Not rendering evil for evil, or railing for railing // But contrariwise blessing // Knowing that ye are thereunto called // Called // That ye should inherit a blessing // A blessing Not rendering evil for evil, or railing for railing not recompensing evil either in words or deeds, Pro 24:29 : See Poole on "1Pe 2:3" , see Rom 12:...

Not rendering evil for evil, or railing for railing not recompensing evil either in words or deeds, Pro 24:29 : See Poole on "1Pe 2:3" , see Rom 12:14,17,19,21 .

But contrariwise blessing praying for, and, as ye can, doing good to, those that do evil to you, or speak evil of you, Mat 5:39,44 Lu 16:27,28 .

Knowing that ye are thereunto called either:

1. To bless those that do evil to you, that so by patient bearing of injuries, forbearing private revenge, &c., ye might obtain a blessing. Or:

2. Ye are called hereunto, viz. to inherit a blessing.

Called in your conversion to the faith of Christ.

That ye should inherit a blessing: this either shows how believers came to partake of the blessing, viz. by way of inheritance; or it implies the perpetuity of it, that, whereas they can exercise their patience in suffering injuries but a little while, their recompence shall be for ever.

A blessing either:

1. Eternal life, as the greatest blessing: or:

2. The good things of both lives, temporal, spiritual, and eternal mercies, which are all promised to the godly, 1Ti 4:8 , and which they have by right of inheritance, Psa 37:11 Mat 5:5 : and this seems to agree with 1Pe 3:10-12 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:10 - He that will love life // And see good days // Let him refrain his tongue from evil // And his lips that they speak no guile He that will love life he that earnestly desires to lead a quiet and comfortable life here, and to enjoy eternal life hereafter. And see good days ...

He that will love life he that earnestly desires to lead a quiet and comfortable life here, and to enjoy eternal life hereafter.

And see good days peaceable and prosperous; as evil days are such as are grievous and calamitous, Gen 47:9 .

Let him refrain his tongue from evil: from evil-speaking, railing, reviling, open detraction.

And his lips that they speak no guile tell no lies of his neighbour: or, this may imply whispering, backbiting, or any way secretly and closely speaking evil of him. Under these two, all the vices of the tongue, whereby our neighbour may be wronged, are contained, and the contrary virtues commanded, under the name of blessing.

Poole: 1Pe 3:11 - Let him eschew evil, and do good // Let him seek peace // And ensue it Let him eschew evil, and do good let him not only in general avoid all sin, and exercise himself in all well-doing, (as the prophet’ s meaning, ...

Let him eschew evil, and do good let him not only in general avoid all sin, and exercise himself in all well-doing, (as the prophet’ s meaning, cited in the margin, seems to be), but particularly, let him avoid all sin against his neighbour, not recompensing evil to him, and doing him all the good he can, and overcoming evil with good; and to this the apostle accommodates the prophet’ s words.

Let him seek peace not only with God and his own conscience, but with his neighbours, which is here especially meant.

And ensue it: either seeking and ensuing signify the same thing, viz. an earnest desire of peace, and use of all lawful means to obtain it; or, ensuing it may signify the difficulty of obtaining it; when we seek it, it may seem to fly from us, men may not let us have peace when we would have peace, Psa 120:7 , and therefore we must follow it, Heb 12:14 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:12 - For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, and his ears are open unto their prayers // But the face of the Lord is against them that do evil For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, and his ears are open unto their prayers God watcheth over them, looks favourably on them, and hears...

For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, and his ears are open unto their prayers God watcheth over them, looks favourably on them, and hears their prayers: see Psa 34:15 . This he lays down as a motive to patience under injuries, and to keep us from tumultuating passions, and desires of revenge; that God sees all we suffer, hath a care of us, and is ready to hear, and in due time to help us.

But the face of the Lord is against them that do evil his anger, or indignation; face being here taken not for God’ s favour, (as many times it is), but in the contrary sense, as Lev 17:10 20:5 Psa 68:1,2 . Men show by their countenances whether they be angry or pleased; and hence it is that God’ s face is sometimes taken for his favour, sometimes for his displeasure. A further argument to persuade us to patience, that God undertakes to plead our cause against our enemies, and avenge us on them; whereas if we think to secure ourselves against them by undue means, we make God an enemy to us.

Poole: 1Pe 3:13 - And who is he that will harm you? // If ye be followers of that which is good And who is he that will harm you? i.e. none or few will harm you, as being convinced and overcome by your good deeds, whereby even they are many time...

And who is he that will harm you? i.e. none or few will harm you, as being convinced and overcome by your good deeds, whereby even they are many times mollified and melted that are of themselves most wicked and hard-hearted, 1Sa 24:16,17 .

If ye be followers of that which is good either followers of God, who doth good to the evil and unkind; but then it should be rendered, followers of him who is good, or rather, followers of those things that are good: q.d. If you be diligent in doing good to others, none will have the heart to do you hurt.

Poole: 1Pe 3:14 - But and if ye suffer for righteousness’ sake // Happy are ye // And be not afraid of their terror // Neither be troubled But and if ye suffer for righteousness’ sake if ye suffer unjustly, whether it be for the true profession of the gospel, or in the exercise of ...

But and if ye suffer for righteousness’ sake if ye suffer unjustly, whether it be for the true profession of the gospel, or in the exercise of righteousness, being followers of that which is good, and walking in the practice of the duties before mentioned.

Happy are ye both in the spiritual benefit you gain by sufferings, viz. your edification in faith, patience, humility, &c.; the glory which redounds to God, who supports you under and carries you through them; and the reward you yourselves expect after them, Mat 5:10 , &c.

And be not afraid of their terror either be not afraid after the manner of carnal men, (as the prophet’ s meaning is, Isa 8:12,13 ), or rather, (the apostle accommodating the words of the prophet to his present purpose), be not afraid of those formidable things wherewith they threaten you; or, be not afraid of themselves and their threatenings, whereby they would strike terror into you: and so here is a metonymy in the words; fear, the effect, being put for the cause; thus fear is taken, Psa 64:1 91:5 Pro 1:26 .

Neither be troubled viz. inordinately, with such a fear as is contrary to faith, and hinders you from doing your duty, Joh 14:1 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:15 - But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts // And be ready always // To give an answer // To every man that asketh you // A reason of the hope that is in you // With meekness and fear But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts exalt him in your hearts, and give him the honour of all his glorious perfections, power, wisdom, goodness, ...

But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts exalt him in your hearts, and give him the honour of all his glorious perfections, power, wisdom, goodness, faithfulness, &c., by believing them, and depending upon his promises for defence and assistance against all the evils your enemies may threaten you with.

And be ready always prepared to answer when duly called to it.

To give an answer or, to make an apology or defence, viz. of the faith ye profess; the word is used, Act 22:1 1Co 9:3 .

To every man that asketh you either that hath authority to examine you, and take an account of your religion; or, that asks with modesty, and a desire to be satisfied, and learn of you.

A reason of the hope that is in you i.e. faith, for which hope is frequently used in Scipture, which is built upon faith: the sense is: Whereas unbelievers, your persecutors especially, may scoff at your hope of future glory, as vain and groundless, and at yourselves, as mad or foolish, for venturing the loss of all in this world, and exposing yourselves to so many sufferings, in expectation of ye know not what uncertainties in the other; do ye therefore be always ready to defend and justify your faith against all objectors, and to show how reasonable your hope of salvation is, and on how sure a foundation it is built.

With meekness and fear either with meekness in relation to men, in opposition to passion and intemperate zeal, (your confession of the faith must be with courage, but yet with a spirit of meekness and modesty), and fear or reverence in relation to God, which, where it prevails, overcomes the fierceness of men’ s spirits, and makes them speak modestly of the things of God, and give due respect to men; or, fear may be set in opposition to pride, and presumption of a man’ s own wisdom or strength; q.d. Make confession of your faith humbly, with fear and trembling, not in confidence of your own strength, or gifts, or abilities.

Poole: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience // That whereas they speak evil of you, &c // Your good conversation in Christ Having a good conscience this may be read either: 1. Indicatively, and joined (as by some it is) to the former verse; and then the sense is: If ye b...

Having a good conscience this may be read either:

1. Indicatively, and joined (as by some it is) to the former verse; and then the sense is: If ye be always ready to answer every one that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you, ye shall have a good conscience: or rather:

2. Imperatively (which our translation favours); q.d. Not only be ready to make confession of your faith, but let your life and practice be correspondent to it, in keeping yourselves pure from sin, and exercising yourselves unto godliness, from whence a good conscience proceeds; here therefore the effect is put for the cause, a good conscience for a good life, Act 23:1 .

That whereas they speak evil of you, &c. the sense is, that whereas they speak evil of you, as of evil-doers, your good conversation may bear witness for you, confute their calumnies, and make them ashamed, when it appears that their accusations are false, and that they have nothing to charge upon you but your being followers of Christ.

Your good conversation in Christ i.e. that good conversation which ye lead as being in Christ; viz. according to his doctrine and example, and by the influence of his Spirit.

Poole: 1Pe 3:17 - If the will of God be so If the will of God be so viz. that ye must suffer; intimating that this is an argument for their patience and submission in their sufferings, and a g...

If the will of God be so viz. that ye must suffer; intimating that this is an argument for their patience and submission in their sufferings, and a ground of comfort to them, that they are led into them by the providence of God, (not by their own folly or rashness), and have him for a witness and judge both of their cause and deportment.

Poole: 1Pe 3:18 - For Christ also hath once suffered // For sins // The just for the unjust // That he might bring us to God // Being put to death in the flesh // But quickened by the Spirit For Christ also hath once suffered in opposition to the legal sacrifices which were offered from day to day, and from year to year, Heb 7:27 9:25 ; a...

For Christ also hath once suffered in opposition to the legal sacrifices which were offered from day to day, and from year to year, Heb 7:27 9:25 ; and Heb 10:12 : and this shows, as the perfection of Christ’ s sufferings, (in that they needed not be repeated), so our conformity to him in deliverance from ours; that as Christ underwent death (the principal part of his sufferings) not often, but once only, and then his glory followed; so likewise, if in this life we suffer for righteousness’ sake, according to Christ’ s example, there remains no more suffering for us, but we shall be glorified with him, 2Ti 2:12 .

For sins i.e. for the expiation of sin. This is another argument for patience under sufferings, that Christ by his sufferings hath taken away the guilt, and freed us from the punishment, of sin; so that our sufferings, though they may be not only by way of trial, but of correction, yet are not properly penal or vindictive.

The just for the unjust and therefore well may we, who are in ourselves unrighteous, be content to suffer, especially for his cause and truth.

That he might bring us to God i.e. reconcile us to God, and procure for us access to him with freedom and boldness, Rom 5:2 Eph 3:12 .

Being put to death in the flesh his human nature, frequently in Scripture called flesh, as 1Pe 4:8 Joh 1:14 ; and though his soul, as being immortal, did not die, yet he suffered most grievous torments in it, and his body died by the real separation of his soul from it.

But quickened by the Spirit i.e. his own Godhead, Joh 2:19 Joh 10:17,18 . The former member of this sentence speaks of the subject of his death, his flesh, which was likewise the subject of his life in his resurrection; this latter speaks of the efficient cause of his life, his own eternal Spirit.

Poole: 1Pe 3:19 - By which also // He // Went // And preached // Unto the spirits // In prison By which also by which Spirit, mentioned in the end of the former verse, i.e. by, or in, his Divine nature, the same by which he was quickened. He ...

By which also by which Spirit, mentioned in the end of the former verse, i.e. by, or in, his Divine nature, the same by which he was quickened.

He Christ. This notes the person that went and preached, as the former doth the nature in which, and so shows that what is here spoken of the person of Christ, is to be understood of him according to his Divine nature.

Went or, came, viz. from heaven, by all anthropopathy, by which figure God is often in Scripture said to go forth, Isa 26:21 , to come down, Mic 1:3 , and go down, Gen 18:21 Exo 3:8 ; which two latter places are best understood of the Second Person. This therefore here notes in Christ not a change of place, but a special operation, and testification of his presence.

And preached viz. by Noah, inspired by him, that he might be a preacher of righteousness, to warn a wicked generation of approaching judgment, and exhort them to repentance.

Unto the spirits souls of men departed, which are frequently called spirits, Ecc 12:7 Act 7:59 Heb 12:23 .

In prison i.e. in hell, so it is taken, Pro 27:20 ; compare with Mat 5:25 Luk 12:58 , where prison is mentioned as a type or representation of hell; and the Syriac renders the word by Sheol, which signifies sometimes the grave and sometimes hell. See the like expression, 2Pe 2:4,5 Jude 1:6 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:20 - Which // Question // Answer // Sometime // Were disobedient // When once // The long-suffering of God // Waited // In the days of Noah // Eight souls // Were saved by water Which which spirits in prison. Question. When were these spirits, to whom Christ preached by Noah, in prison? Answer. Then when Peter wrote thi...

Which which spirits in prison.

Question. When were these spirits, to whom Christ preached by Noah, in prison?

Answer. Then when Peter wrote this Epistle. The Greek participle of the present tense is here to be supplied, and the word thus read, preached to the spirits which are in prison, viz. now at this time; and so the time of their being in prison is opposed to the time of their being disobedient; their disobedience going before their imprisonment; q.d. They were disobedient then, they are in prison now.

Sometime viz. in the days of Noah, when they were upon earth.

Were disobedient would not believe what Noah told them in God’ s name, nor be brought to repentance by his preaching.

When once not always, but for a determinate time, viz. one hundred and twenty years; which term being expired, there was no hope left for them that they should be spared.

The long-suffering of God i.e. God in his patience and long-suffering.

Waited for the repentance and reformation of that rebellious generation.

In the days of Noah till the one hundred and twenty years were run out, and the ark, which was preparing for the security of him and his family, were finished.

Eight souls i.e. eight persons, Noah, and his wife, his three sons, and their wives.

Were saved by water either:

1. By water is here put for in, as Rom 4:11 , that believe, though they be not circumcised: the same Greek preposition is used as here, and the words may be read, by, or through, or rather in uncircumcision; for uncircumcision was not the cause or means of their believing. See the like use of this particle, 2Pe 3:5 . Thus, saved in the water, is as much as, notwithstanding the water, or the water not hindering; so 1Ti 2:15 , saved in childbearing, where the same preposition is used. Or:

2. By water; the water which drowned the world, lifting up the ark and saving Noah and his household.

Question. Doth not this place countenance the papists’ limbus, or the place where the souls of the Old Testament fathers were reserved (as they pretend) till Christ’ s coming in the flesh?

Answer. No: for:

1. The spirits here mentioned were disobedient, which cannot be said of the fathers of the Old Testament, who were true believers.

2. The spirits here mentioned are not said to be delivered out of prison, but only that Christ by his Spirit preached to them, and to his preaching to them their disobedience is opposed.

3. According to the papists, Noah and his family must be in their limbus, whereas they are opposed to those disobedient spirits to whom Christ is said to preach.

Poole: 1Pe 3:21 - The like figure // Whereunto // Even baptism doth also now save us // Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh // But the answer of a good conscience // A good conscience // Toward God // By the resurrection of Jesus Christ The like figure Greek, the antitype. Twice this word occurs in Scripture; once Heb 9:24 , where it signifies simply a type, or exemplar, or represent...

The like figure Greek, the antitype. Twice this word occurs in Scripture; once Heb 9:24 , where it signifies simply a type, or exemplar, or representation; and here, where it implies either the likeness or correspondence of one type with another in signifying the same thing: so that here may be two types, the deliverance of Noah and his household in the flood, and baptism, whereof the former was a type of the latter, yet so as both represent the salvation of the church; in that as the waters of the flood lifting up the ark, and saving Noah’ s family shut up in it, signified the salvation of the church; so likewise baptism signifies the salvation of those that are in the church (as in an ark) from that common destruction which involves the rest of the world: or, it signifies the truth itself, as answering the type or figure; and thus the temporal salvation of Noah, &c. from the flood, in the ark, was the type, and the eternal salvation of believers by baptism is the antitype, or truth figured by it. Our translation seems to favour the former.

Whereunto i.e. the saving eight persons by water; q.d. The salvation of believers now by baptism, answers to the deliverance of Noah then; and so this relative, whereunto, answers to the foregoing sentence, as its antecedent.

Even baptism doth also now save us viz. with an eternal salvation, in answer to the temporal deliverance of Noah by water; and that not only as it is a sign, but a seal whereby the Spirit of God confirms in the hearts of believers the faith of their justification purchased by Christ’ s death, and witnessed by his resurrection, Rom 4:25 .

Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh not merely the washing of the body with water, or the external part of baptism, which can of itself have no further effect than other bodily washings have, viz. to cleanse the flesh. And so he answers an objection which might be made: How baptism can be said to save us, when so many perish who are baptized, by declaring, as follows, what it is in baptism which is so effectual.

But the answer of a good conscience: the Greek word here used is several ways rendered, and so this place differently interpreted: the best translation seems to be, either:

1. The petition of a good conscience, and then it notes the effect of baptism, viz. that holy confidence and security wherewith a conscience, sprinkled with the blood of Christ, addresses itself to God in prayer, as a Father. Thus the word is taken, Mat 15:23 16:2 Rom 10:20 . Or rather:

2. The stipulation, which by a metonymy is taken for the answer, promise, or restipulation required; and this agrees with our translation.

In baptism there is a solemn covenant, or mutual agreement, between God and the party baptized, wherein God offers, applies, and seals his grace, stipulating or requiring the party’ s acceptance of that grace, and devoting himself to his service; and when he out of a good conscience doth engage and promise this, which is to come up to the terms of covenant, that may properly be called the answer of a good conscience. It seems to be an allusion to the manner of baptizing, where the minister asked the party to be baptized concerning his faith in Christ, and he accordingly answered him; Dost thou believe? I believe. Dost thou renounce the devil, &c.? I renounce. See Act 8:37 .

A good conscience a conscience purified by faith from internal and spiritual defilements, (in opposition to putting away the filth of the flesh), which only sincerely answers to what God requires in baptism.

Toward God i.e. in the presence of God, with whom conscience hath to do in baptism, and who alone is the Judge of conscience, and knows whether it be good and sincere, or not: or, toward God, is to God; and then it relates to answer, and implies the answer or engagement of conscience to be made to God.

By the resurrection of Jesus Christ: either these words are to be joined to the verb save, and the rest of the verse to be read in a parenthesis, according to our translation; and then the sense is, that baptism saves us by the faith of Christ’ s resurrection, or by virtue derived from Christ’ s resurrection, under which is comprehended his death and sufferings: or they are to be joined to answer, supplying which is; and then, without a parenthesis, the text runs thus, the answer of a good conscience, which is by the resurrection of Christ; and the meaning is, that the answer of a good conscience toward God is by the resurrection of Christ, as the foundation of our believing the promise of forgiveness and free grace, inasmuch as it testifies God to be fully satisfied for sin, and Christ to have fully overcome sin, the devil, &c. For where this faith is not, there can be no good conscience, nor any sincere answering what God requires of us in baptism: if men do not believe the satisfaction of Divine justice by Christ’ s death, which is evidenced by his resurrection, they will not close with the offers of his grace, nor engage themselves to be the Lord’ s. See 1Pe 1:3 1Co 15:17 .

Poole: 1Pe 3:22 - Who is gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of God // Angels and authorities and powers // Being made subject unto him Who is gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of God: see Rom 8:34 Heb 1:3 . This is added as another ground of faith and a good conscience. Ang...

Who is gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of God: see Rom 8:34 Heb 1:3 . This is added as another ground of faith and a good conscience.

Angels and authorities and powers: see Rom 8:38 Eph 1:20,21 Col 1:16 Col 2:10 .

Being made subject unto him viz. by his Father, to whom this subjecting all things to Christ is elsewhere ascribed, 1Co 15:27 Eph 1:22 Heb 2:8 .

PBC: 1Pe 3:1 - Whose adorning let it not be that outward adorning of plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold, or of putting on of apparel. // Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him lord: whose daughters ye are, as long as ye do well, and are not afraid with any amazement. // ... as long as ye do well, and are not afraid with any amazement. // ... and are not afraid with any amazement. 1Pe 3:1 Wives: Submissive Without Fear Likewise, ye wives, be in subjection to your own husbands; that, if any obey not the word, they also may with...

1Pe 3:1

Wives: Submissive Without Fear

Likewise, ye wives, be in subjection to your own husbands; that, if any obey not the word, they also may without the word be won by the conversation of the wives; While they behold your chaste conversation coupled with fear. Whose adorning let it not be that outward adorning of plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold, or of putting on of apparel; But let it be the hidden man of the heart, in that which is not corruptible, even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit, which is in the sight of God of great price. For after this manner in the old time the holy women also, who trusted in God, adorned themselves, being in subjection unto their own husbands: Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him lord: whose daughters ye are, as long as ye do well, and are not afraid with any amazement. {1Pe 3:1-6}

When reading a book in the Bible, we should keep in mind that the chapter divisions were added over a thousand years after the New Testament letters were originally written. The books were compiled as flowing letters whose contents were inspired of God. As in a number of other contexts, the chapter break in this context breaks a flowing context. " Likewise" directly unites this lesson to Peter’s teaching at the end of chapter 2. {1Pe 2:1-25}

As servants are to respect their masters and submit to them, even so Peter directs wives to submit to their husbands. Wives, don’t worry. In the next lesson Peter uses another " likewise" toward husbands. The sexist schism of our culture has devastated the Biblical model of marriage. Sadly, many Christian teachers have given the sexists the rocks they hurl back at Christians by teaching one side of this truth while neglecting the other. They emphasize the wife’s obligation to submit, but they either ignore or contradict the husband’s equal obligation to submit to his wife. God did not inherently create woman inferior to man. He made her to fill in the weak spots in the man and to complete him. Thus the divinely assigned roles of man and woman are to be distinct, but mutually submissive and supportive. Husbands and wives in God’s model are to function as a cooperative team of two equals, not as a master and a slave.

In this lesson Peter explains the reason for this urgent requirement upon believing women. He presupposes a marriage in which the wife is a believer, but the husband is not. According to Peter, the wife’s life with her husband is to serve as a living, walking, talking Bible. She reads the Bible, but he doesn’t. However, her life before him is to model the godly teachings of Scripture. He may not attend church with her, or he may reluctantly attend but prefer to do other things. She reads the Bible; he doesn’t. She listens to the Biblical teaching; he looks out the window and wishes he were somewhere else.

Paul taught the Corinthian church that a marriage should be between a husband and wife in which both members of the union are believers, equal in this area as in others. {2Co 6:14-18; while the exhortation applies to more than marriage, we cannot exclude the marriage union from this passage, instruction that young people frequently ignore in choosing their friends and eventually their marriage partners.} Peter understands that all marriages will not occur in this model of faith. Either people will marry before they become believers, or they will ignore Paul’s teaching and marry outside their faith in Christ. Thus Peter instructs wives who find themselves in an " unequal" marriage; she is a believer, but her husband is not.

In our culture all too often wives in this situation ignore Peter’s instruction. Some women join the husband at the lower level of human conduct, effectively forsaking their faith. Then they wonder why they do not find joy and fulfillment in life. Other women will become bitter, submitting to the husband and forsaking their faith, but resenting him for pushing them into their neglect of faith. In either of these choices the wife forsakes Biblical instruction.

What does Peter teach a wife of an unbelieving husband to do? Maintain her faith and live so winsomely, so graciously, as to win him over time by her conduct. Become a walking, talking Bible before him. He may refuse to read the Bible, but the wife is to model the grace of God in her conduct so as to bear constant witness to her husband of God’s grace toward us. If God touches the husband’s heart, in time the gracious conduct of the wife will have such a powerful impact on him as to win him to the faith. " ... be won by the conversation of the wives." In this phrase conversation is a word that refers to the wife’s whole demeanor, not just her words.

" Whose adorning let it not be that outward adorning of plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold, or of putting on of apparel."  Sometimes Christian teachers interpret this verse so as to forbid women from wearing contemporary hair styles, or jewelry. Peter’s dominant thought is not that these things are to be forbidden, but that they are not to be the dominant characteristic of the woman’s life. If he intended a literal prohibition against all these items, he also forbids the wearing of clothes. Obviously that point is not his intent. In no place in Scripture do we find people encouraged to practice nudism. The obvious point in the context is that a believing woman should make her godly life the mark of her relationship with her husband. She should not live so as to lead him to think that hair style, jewelry, and clothes are the most important issues of her life.

" Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him lord: whose daughters ye are, as long as ye do well, and are not afraid with any amazement."

 Not only does the Bible hold Abraham forth as an example of godly faith, in this lesson, as in several others in the New Testament, Scripture holds Sarah forth equally as a model of godly faith for women. Heb 11:11 clearly identifies Sarah’s model faith in that she considered God faithful who promised to give her a son in her old age. She had already experienced menopause; yet she believed that God could reverse the whole process of her body’s state and give her a son according to his promise. That is model faith!

" ... as long as ye do well, and are not afraid with any amazement."

 How often we ignore nuances of Biblical teaching when it surprises us or appears in a setting that we do not readily grasp. Peter’s model for both husbands and wives requires godly conduct, regardless of the state of faith in the other partner. The overarching principle applies as instructively to men in an unequal marriage as to women. Perhaps with a man in this setting the issues to be avoided relate to career and to hobbies more than to hairstyles, jewelry, and dress. A man who neglects his family for career or for indulgent hobbies is no different from a woman who lives for her appearance. Pride and self-indulgence drive both in their faulty conduct.

Peter allows nothing to hinder any believer from the constant practice of godliness. Strong defines the Greek word translated as " do well" instructively. " 1 to do good, do something which profits others. 1a to be a good help to someone. 1b to do someone a favour. 1c to benefit. 2 to do well, do right. Additional Information: At Sparta, this was the name of the five oldest knights, who went on missions for the state." To " do something which profits others" captures Peter’s thought precisely. The godly wife who lives her faith wisely with her husband will demonstrate grace toward her husband by working conscientiously for his benefit.

" ... and are not afraid with any amazement."

 Afraid, what is Peter’s point here? How does this thought blend with the context? Peter has not left his contextual thought. A believing wife might feel quite vulnerable to practice Peter’s directions toward her husband with winsome boldness. As in the exhortation of the prior chapter, Jesus’ life is to serve as our example. Just as he refused to strike back against those who mistreated him, so we are to live according to his example. When faced with situations in which we might feel vulnerable, we are to commit our safe keeping to God. {1Pe 2:23}

If a believing wife gives up her faith because she fears losing her husband, she not only loses her faith; she also risks losing his respect towards her. He might view her as being generally weak and not willing to stand up for other things that she believes strongly. However, if she stands winsomely firm in her faith, consistently models her faith before her husband, and remains faithful, serving God without fearing her spouse, she more likely will gain his respect. She is to trust God more than fear her husband’s rejection. How delightfully God often blesses such faithful women with a wonderful surprise. With time, her faithful devotion to God and to her faith will win the husband to the faith. God works in his heart, and he honors his wife’s gracious faithfulness by joining her in the faith. We should never be afraid to be faithful to God.

455

PBC: 1Pe 3:7 - Likewise Husbands: Submissive in the Grace of Life For too long in our Western culture Christian husbands have insisted on their wives wearing the submission ...

Husbands: Submissive in the Grace of Life

For too long in our Western culture Christian husbands have insisted on their wives wearing the submission shoe, while they politely ignored the matching shoe that Scripture puts on their foot.

"Likewise"

in this verse applies every principle of Peter’s exhortation to wives equally to husbands! Further Peter adds the exhortations that follow in the verse to the husband’s exhortation. In addition to every point made to the wife Peter directs godly husbands to show special grace and consideration to their wives.

When challenged with this idea, many Christian husbands will immediately go to Eph 5:1-33 and Paul’s command for wives to submit to their husbands. However, a careful study of this lesson will affirm the same reciprocal command from Paul to husbands. Once again in that context, as we see in Peter’s instructions here, Paul adds to the husbands’ duties. To love his wife as Christ loved the church and gave himself for her imposes an incredible challenge upon a godly husband. In no instance did Paul {in Eph 5:1-33 or elsewhere} tell husbands that their assignment included constantly reminding their wives to submit. Rather he directed them to show reciprocal submission, as well as to show that special sacrificial love that we see so perfectly modeled in our Lord’s death for his beloved bride, his people. In Peter’s lesson " likewise" applies to men all the rules Peter applied to women in the prior verses. Then he adds the special exhortations that follow in this verse. Christian men would enhance their marriages-and their Christian testimony to a skeptical world-by applying these teachings to their conduct toward their wives.

Rather than establishing the typical competitive spirit in the marriage, New Testament teachings establish a godly partnership between equals. God defines their roles differently, but not unequally.

We should distinguish pretense from reality in this area. I have talked with several godly men whom I deeply respect, along with their wives whom I equally respect. Both the husband and the wife defended the more traditional view of an unequal relationship within the marriage. However, without exception as I observe the actually dynamics of their marriage, I see far more true equality in fact than their words would suggest. Several years ago I heard of a situation in which both the husband and wife verbally defended the traditional role. However, a few minutes later in private conversation with other women the wife chuckled at her success in controlling her husband while leaving him to think he was in control. This wife’s thin façade of obedience to her concept of the Biblical role dishonored both her husband and herself. She wanted to leave the impression of submission, but she had no intention of actually obeying what she perceived God to require of her. One wife offered this quip. " I wholly agree that the husband is to be the head of the family, but the wife is the neck, and the neck can turn the head any way she wishes." These observations sadly reveal the fairly typical disunion in Christian marriages between fact and the words offered by both spouses. Some live closer to the Biblical model than their words suggest, but they seem compelled to give lip-service to the traditional model of an unequal relationship. Consider these Biblical ideas that affirm an equal, though divinely defined, relationship within a godly marriage:

1. Believers are urged to avoid " unequal" relationships with unbelievers, marriage included. {2Co 6:14-18} How can we miss the obvious point? A godly marriage is a union of equals, in this case a union of equal believers.

 2. Paul introduces the lesson in Eph 5:1-33 with a specific command for all believers to submit to each other in the fear of God. {Eph 5:21} In the verses that follow he clearly defines a leadership role for the husband, but not a superiority role.

 3. In our study lesson Peter distinctly defines the godly results of a mutually submissive, respectful marriage; "... heirs together [emphasis mine] of the grace of life, that your prayers be not hindered."

 4. Lastly, I suggest that the contemporary Christian male idea that a woman should not work outside the home should be exposed to the model of the virtuous woman in Pr 31:1-31. I strongly defend that the woman, particularly this virtuous model woman, will in fact make her family’s interest first in anything that she does, something that many career-driven men could also do to their family’s vast benefit. However, the virtuous woman of Pr 31:1-31 wisely bargains in the shopping center of the culture. She even investigates and purchases real estate! Her public conduct outside the home becomes the basis for her husband’s friends to praise both him and his wife. When we attempt to recreate a Biblical culture, we must face the consistent weight of all Scripture on our cultural model, not merely select the verses that appear to fit our preconceptions.

No doubt many readers will raise a question. Didn’t Peter describe the wife as the " weaker vessel" ?I offer that Peter was referring to the wife’s physical, not to her emotional, intellectual, or spiritual stature. This distinction forms part of the divinely imposed " job descriptions" for husbands and wives. God directs godly husbands to stand between their wives and physical harm. The hormonal distinctions between a man and a woman typically make the man more muscular than the woman. A godly husband will protect his wife from exposure to physical danger in any way he can. Here is an example. A little over a year ago Sandra and I were visiting our daughter, her husband, and our infant grandson. We had walked up the street to their mailbox to get the mail. It was a warm sunny day, so we decided to walk down the street past their home. Suddenly a dog barked and started running towards us, growling, hair standing on end. My first thought was for our grandson, but immediately I jumped in front of our group to put myself between them and the dog. I doubt that I could have prevented the dog from getting by me, but I hoped that he would engage me and spare them. Sandra also took measures to protect our little Noah. What I did was not calculated; it was instinctive. Gratefully the dog’s owner ran out quickly, controlled his dog, and apologized for our fright. I believe this simple experience illustrates Peter’s point regarding the husband-wife role and the husband’s obligation to protect his wife from exposure to physical harm. To interpret this phrase so as to diminish a woman’s intellectual, moral, or spiritual stature is to pour far more into the lesson than Peter intended. Frequently in our culture we see the wife standing tall as the moral leader of the family, much to the husband’s shame? Do we see the Biblical model of moral leadership in the hypocritical standard that many families allow with their children? Where is the Biblical provision that boys may follow a double standard while girls are to live faithfully on the high moral ground? Scripture clearly imposes exactly the same moral expectations on men and women alike. I believe the false double standard between boys and girls that we typically see in families, including Christian families, grows out of the false idea that God made the man somehow superior to the woman. If we fully embrace the divine equality that I here defend, I believe the hypocritical double standard between men and women would disappear.

According to Peter, a mutually respectful and submissive marital relationship will foster a healthy spiritual growth in both husbands and wives. Husbands and wives are " heirs together" of the grace of life. They do not compete for supremacy; rather they accept God’s defined roles with mutual submission, first to God, and then to each other. They strive to fulfill God’s model for their relationship. Rather than modeling the strife of life, they become a godly model for the " grace of life."

Peter caps the lesson with a preeminently spiritual tone, " ... that your prayers be not hindered." As surely as a husband and wife are playing mind games with each other or competing with each other-as with the wife who pretended to submit, but immediately reversed her tone when her husband left the room (or the more honest wife who claimed the role of neck)-their spiritual life, including their intimate prayers to God, will suffer. God makes no distinction in the prayers of a wife or a husband. Are we willing to submit to God and serve as equals? As Christian husbands and wives, will we model honest equality and reject traditional hypocrisy? To Him be the glory!

275

PBC: 1Pe 3:8 - Finally, // called "Finally," this is not the end of Peter’s letter; what does he mean? We have studied a number of exhortations that all stand on the weight of Jesus...

"Finally,"

this is not the end of Peter’s letter; what does he mean? We have studied a number of exhortations that all stand on the weight of Jesus’ personal example. These two verses, and perhaps the Old Testament citation that follows, will conclude that series of exhortations. In fact it appears that the theme set by these two verses continues through verse 14. {1Pe 3:8-14} As Peter leads us through seasons of suffering with Christ, he never moves far away from our Lord, and the power of Jesus’ example for us in all things energizes and enables the activities set forth in this series of duties. {1Pe 2:18-3:14}

Be ye all of one mind.

We have all encountered that church member who lives his life on the edge of the church’s fellowship. " I want to be part of the church, but I’ll do so on my own terms, not someone else’s." One must wonder; has this person ever considered what Jesus intended by His command to deny self? I doubt it. " ... Of one mind" means that you think alike. You agree, not just in words and superficial interaction; you agree to the depth of your thoughts. Two strategies occasionally appear among church people, both of which avoid this exhortation. One is the independent attitude of the person who wants to be a member of the church on his terms. The other is the person who thinks he/she knows more about what is best for the church than anyone else in the group, so they try to manipulate others into agreeing with them. Whenever this person asks you about something, it is usually with a lead-in that nudges you, not with a true solicitation of your viewpoint. The man in the pulpit must perform his assignment with the heart of a servant; the people in the pew must practice their Christianity with the servant’s heart no less than the pastor. Agreement at the depth that Peter directs in this verse clashes intensely with our rebellious, self-centered, fallen inclinations. How refreshing it is when you see a believer who truly lives out his faith with a servant’s heart.

... having compassion one of another

The Greek word translated compassion means to "suffer with." The truly compassionate believer doesn’t monitor the activities of others in the church to have something to gossip to others about; he stands close to others so as to feel their heartbeat and to stand closely beside them during trials. Almost exactly a year ago I faced a major crisis in my personal health. One of the most difficult issues I faced was a pervasive sense of loneliness. I felt as if I were the only person who ever faced this problem. Shortly after coming home from the hospital, I found an internet forum of other men who survived prostate cancer. To read their experiences and to see in their struggles the exact experience I had just gone through became a great encouragement to me. They didn’t need to play Pollyanna and pretend that nothing was wrong. They didn’t need to tell me how much they felt for me. Their common experience spoke volumes that helped me to realize that I was indeed not alone in this ordeal, that other men had suffered the same disease, faced the same procedures to correct it, and lived to see another day, even lived to encourage others who faced the same disease. Often someone will speak this sentiment, " I want to help, to encourage others, but I simply don’t know what to say." You don’t have to say anything! The spirit of true sympathy (Perhaps in twenty first century language the word is empathy.), spoken from the heart, will communicate itself to others without a single word. During Queen Victoria’s reign, the story is told of one of her servant’s wife who lost an infant child. The queen directed her staff to arrange for her to pay a personal visit to this grieving mother. When the royal carriage arrived at the humble servant’s home, the queen directed that all her staff remain outside; she alone would go inside to visit the woman. She remained in the house for over an hour. After the queen left, a neighbor visited the mother and asked, " What did she talk about with you? What did she say?" The bereaved mother responded, " She didn’t say a word the whole time she was here. She simply held my hand, and we wept together." That, my friends, is the spirit of Peter’s exhortation.

... love as brethren

People in a local church are not brothers. They come from various walks of life, from different families, cultures, and traditions. If you set aside their common faith, they likely have less in common than the people with whom they work in their careers. However, the pervasive impact of this common faith urges us to take steps, to make a conscious and determined effort to live together and to love each other as brothers in the common faith. This brotherly love does not spontaneously occur. It grows out of a conscious decision to act in a certain way towards others. Have you made that decision? Have you taken calculated steps to live with your brothers and sisters in the church as part of a family?

... be pitiful

Over the centuries since the King James Bible was translated this word has evolved. Peter has not thought of urging his readers to act pathetically. The Greek word translated pitiful means to be tender hearted, full of compassion. We might easily criticize a brother or sister who doesn’t always walk according to our personal drumbeat. Rather than critiquing them, Peter urges us to show compassion to them.

... be courteous

Vine defines the Greek word translated courteous, " friendly thoughtfulness." It suggests that you remain " tuned into" those around you. You develop the habit of gently stepping into their life at just the right time, of having a knack of knowing what to say or do to encourage others. May their tribe increase!

... not rendering evil for evil

Peter confronts us with a dynamic choice. Will we practice the Golden Rule that Jesus taught in the Sermon on the Mount? Or will we practice the " Golden Rule" of man, " He who has the most gold rules" ?In our fallen, sinful world we should not expect that people will always treat us kindly. Sometimes we will face unexpected cruelty or thoughtlessness from others, even at times from other believers. How do you respond when someone treats you with thoughtless insensitivity? Whether people interact with us with harshness in deeds (evil) or in words (railing), Peter directs us back to our Lord’s personal example. {1Pe 2:23}

"called"

The Bible reserves the idea of calling for special occasions. We enjoy a " high calling" in our Lord Jesus Christ. The idea that we are pursuing something to which God has uniquely called us to do, and for which He has uniquely prepared us, dominates the New Testament concept of calling. Peter applies this term to God’s direction for our lives with others, particularly toward those who respond with insensitivity or cruelty toward us. To respond to harsh words with blessing instead of retaliation reflects our response to a divine calling.

... that ye might inherit a blessing

Peter stretches the fabric of our emotions. Will we respond to harsh words from others in the mirror image of their thoughtless cruelty? Or will we respond to them with Jesus’ example foremost in our minds?

As we survey Peter’s list of exhortations in these two verses, we must return to the power of our Lord’s example. {1Pe 2:21-23} Has anyone ever treated us with the incredible cruelty that our Lord suffered on our behalf? Nothing that we ever faced at the hands of thoughtless people can compare, even remotely, with the cruelty that He suffered without complaint. If we attempt to practice Peter’s teaching on the basis of our stubborn determination, and in our own power, we will fail miserably. If we live on the edge of our human emotions, we might think momentarily that we should respond according to Jesus’ example, but we will in fact fall into a retaliatory spirit of the hatefulness that the other person hurled upon us. Then we will struggle with self-loathing guilt that we failed to live up to our true calling in Christ.

There is something quite unique about God’s calling. Whenever He calls one of His own to perform a divine assignment, He always provides the empowerment to fulfill that calling. We readily grasp the idea as we think of it in terms of the ministry. We know that a man cannot preach the gospel apart from God’s empowerment. The man may stand in the pulpit, quote Scriptures precisely, and speak the right words for the occasion, but if God doesn’t empower the words, they fall fruitless to the ground. Apply the same simple principle to your divine calling to respond with kindness when treated with cruelty. God will provide the power you need to fulfill His example.

51

PBC: 1Pe 3:9 - -- See PB: 1Pe 3:8

See PB: 1Pe 3:8

PBC: 1Pe 3:10 - he that will love life // ... Let him refrain his tongue from evil. // Let him eschew evil, and do good. // ... Let him seek peace. // ... And ensue it. // For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous... // ... His ears are open unto their prayers. // ... But the face of the Lord is against them that do evil. In twenty-first century Western culture you frequently hear people talk about seeking the " good life." If you were to ask these people to define the...

In twenty-first century Western culture you frequently hear people talk about seeking the " good life." If you were to ask these people to define their idea of this life, you’d hear a multitude of lifestyles. Most of them would involve the indulgence of a particular appetite or taste for pleasure. Occasionally you will see a bumper sticker on an expensive motor home or other recreational vehicle, " He who dies with the most expensive toys wins." Sadly, many people define the " good life" in terms of a toy, not in terms of a godly lifestyle.

God has no objection to a believer owning a motor home, a boat, or other recreational " toys." God has a major objection to those toys owning us!

"he that will love life"

Loving life is not the equivalent to surviving life. It is not characterized by looking back over life with a long list of regrets and disappointments. Perhaps something of a surprise, the Greek word translated love in this phrase comes from the noblest Greek word for love. The word refers to God’s love for his people, to supreme, sacrificial love that considers the person loved, not self.

The image of loving life in this sense may at first glance surprise many believers. " I thought this world was not a friend to grace, that we are strangers who struggle to survive this world till we finally get to die and go to heaven." This idea considers only one aspect of the godly life. Indeed we face struggles in our faith. For the believer, life often seems like a battlefield with the forces of good and evil tearing at the very fabric of our existence. However, the balanced believer will also see in this world the incredible evidences of God’s creation, of His masterful dominion, of His handiwork in the beauty of creation. Further, the balanced believer will also see life in terms of opportunities to serve others with helpful words and encouraging deeds. Peter defines the good life for the believer in terms of the way we live, not in terms of what we possess-or of what possesses us.

" ... Let him refrain his tongue from evil."

Perhaps the most frequent sins we commit relate in one way or another to the tongue. On more than one occasion I have walked into conversations of believers talking about other believers, always focused on a major tragedy or sin in that person’s life, never on the other person’s successes. When confronted with the fact that this conduct is condemned in Scripture as gossip, the person actually responded, " Oh, I’m not gossiping. I’m ‘sharing’ the situation with others so that they can pray for him." If this were the truth, then you would frequently hear this same person talking about another person’s successes so that others can thank God for that person’s blessings, something the gossip almost never does. If, as Scripture clearly teaches, we receive what we sow, the person who gossips about others will frequently also be the object of gossip. Typically the gossip carefully hides his personal problems from others for this very reason. He/she doesn’t want others talking about him/her in the way he/she has habitually talked about them! Thus the person who refuses to refrain his tongue from evil lives a cloistered, often very lonely life behind a superficial façade, not a good place for living the good life.

" Let him eschew evil, and do good."

The Greek word translated as eschew means to go out of the way to avoid something. We do not realize the good life by walking blindly into evil, and then pretending we could do nothing to avoid it. We discern the difference between good and evil, and we take specific steps to avoid evil. The flip side of this coin appears in a calculated, purposeful determination to do good. We need not fret about what is good and what is not. God doesn’t leave us to our own private tastes to determine good. He clearly defines it, even illustrates it in the Incarnate life of His Son, in Scripture. Do you want to know what is good and what is not? Spend a lot of daily time with your Bible, and with your mind engaged as your read it. Don’t use the Bible as your sleeping pill, to be taken a few minutes before you go to sleep at night, a time when most people are tired, and their minds are not able to absorb active thoughts and engage challenging ideas. Spend active time with your Bible at the most productive time of day. Don’t read the Bible as an " other-worldly" book that contains little or nothing of value to your life and its routine demands. Read it as God’s relevant message to you for your immediate life and decisions.

" ... Let him seek peace."

Seek, the Greek word means to seek by thinking, meditating, and reasoning; to enquire into. We don’t discover peace in our life by accident. We don’t stumble into it. We realize peace through a reflective process of thinking and living that makes peace our primary objective. Peace with God will make peace with other people around us far more accessible. How easily Christian people seem inclined to live in a state of constant war with other believers, all the while claiming to be at contented peace with God.

I suggest that the state of our relationships with other people will typically mirror the state of our relationship with God!

The person who constantly encounters disappointments and tensions with other people in all likelihood struggles with disappointment and tension with God.

" ... And ensue it."

The mental image of this word is to run eagerly to catch something. The believer who seeks the good life will work " 24/7" toward peace, not war.

"For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous..."

How can a believer live according to this pattern? For Peter, and for the Holy Spirit Who inspired his words, the spiritual good life lies within our reach only as we keep our eyes on God with the realization that His eyes are on us. We must come to realize that we do not gain our objectives by manipulating others, by walking over the people who get in our way, or by making our personal desires the most important things of life. A believer who embraces the liberating truth that God never takes His eyes off us, that He is intimately involved in every aspect of our life, can more readily let go of selfish strategies and engage the unrestrained giving of self to others.

"... His ears are open unto their prayers."

At times any of us may well pray and feel that God seems far away from us. Don’t forget. How we feel is not the objective of prayer. If we truly embrace the essential attribute of God’s omnipresence, we must pray with full conviction that, feel His presence or not, God is present. The faithful prayer approaches God with the realization of his presence, but it also embraces His essential trait of caring for the legitimate needs of his people. We don’t need to bargain with God to entice Him to listen to our prayer. We will never approach Him in prayer when He is too busy to listen.

" ... But the face of the Lord is against them that do evil."

What does Peter mean by this term, " the face of the Lord" ?God’s face is an open book to the believer. God never responds to us with fickle or unpredictable actions. We may rest as fully convinced that God opposes evil in our choices and conduct as we may rest assured that He will empower good.

The Old Testament lesson of Balaam, the false prophet, should instruct us in this point. Repeatedly God told Balaam not to curse Israel, regardless of the reward offered to him by Israel’s enemies. At first he chose to listen to God’s warning, but the appeal of an increasing sum of wealth to curse Israel tugged at his indulgent heart. Against God’s warning, he agreed to go. As he rode his donkey on this ill-intended journey, the donkey saw the angel of God, poised to destroy this mercenary prophet. The donkey stopped in his tracks. At first the prophet beat and coaxed the donkey. Finally, God allowed a donkey to speak to a prophet whose selfish motives were dumber than his donkey! Only by this donkey’s refusal to continue down the path had the false prophet been spared an instant death.

For a believer in Christ to pursue the carnal version of the good life, or to pursue godliness with selfish schemes, is no less bizarre than this stubborn prophet’s scheme. May we embrace God’s view of the good life-and pursue it.

269

PBC: 1Pe 3:13 - But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts... // ... be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you. Does righteous living guarantee that a believer will never face problems or troubles in life? If we interpret the first sentence in this passage accor...

Does righteous living guarantee that a believer will never face problems or troubles in life? If we interpret the first sentence in this passage according to that understanding, we face an ominous task in reconciling it with other passages indicating that those who are willing to live godly in Christ shall face persecution. " As a general principle, allowing for exceptions occasioned by the adversary’s wrath, people are not punished for doing good. This very principle assures that undeserved suffering will not continue long." [i] This thought from the Wycliffe Bible Commentary captures a pertinent thought. A winsome, godly lifestyle does not normally attract persecution, but on occasion Satan may go after a particularly godly person because he knows the danger of a godly example to his designs.

Occasionally Christians wear their faith as if it were a chip on their shoulder. They display it in a grudging style that looks down on others and dares anyone to disagree with them. Such an arrogant attitude will attract low respect, and at times even contempt, for it falsely represents Christianity. This person’s unchristian attitude, not his claim of faith, attracted trouble to him.

Peter deals with persecution intensely throughout this letter. His model of a believer requires a gracious winsomeness in our Christian demeanor. Notice in the closing thought of our study passage that Peter requires us, even when confronted with skeptical interrogation, to present our apologetic (in the classical sense of apologetics; to explain, to give rational defense or reasons for what we believe), to answer with " meekness and fear." Sadly often, Christians interact with other Christians of a different stripe, of dissimilar theological viewpoints, with intense acrimony, not with meekness and fear. The acrimonious " Christian" (I put the word in quotations; I doubt that a genuine Christian can represent his faith with acrimony towards anyone, particularly another believer.) destroys his credibility by his attitude. He may be correct in certain points or principles, but his attitude is so unchristian that he will not convince many of the merits of his case. If we are to represent our faith to unbelievers with meekness and fear, how then should we represent our faith to other believers who may differ with us in certain theological or practical details? We are to imitate our holy Example in gracious suffering.

Indeed the Christian may at times suffer for his faith, but God promises to keep a providential restraint around his faithful people. We may at times view certain events in our life as " harmful." In fact they may well be harmful and difficult for us at the time, but we never know what will happen in the end. God may use the trial of the moment for our spiritual growth and for the godly instruction of others around us. The answer to this point lies in the extent and in the duration of trial. We may face occasional trials and difficulties because of our faith. In his extensive teaching on Christian suffering in this letter Peter makes a cogent point; when you suffer, be sure that you suffer for your faith, not for your sins. There is a world of difference between prosecution and persecution.

" But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts..."

The first step in an effective Christian apologetic strategy must occur within the inner circles of our life. If we fail here, Satan will use our weakness against us when we engage in kingdom labor. Biblical apologetics is not designed to beat up on people of a different world view or theological perspective. God intends that everything we do should lead observers to a closer walk with Him.

God calls us to win people to fellowship with Him, not to win arguments.

To this end He requires that our private faith be as authentic as our public pretenses.

" ... be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you."

Be ready, the idea requires advance preparation. Far too many Christians go into an apologetic situation with no advance thought whatever. They think if they just respond based on good intentions and their emotions that the other person will be won by their sincerity. They seldom learn through their consistent failure to win people by this strategy. If you expect to face someone who does not agree with your viewpoint, learn as much as possible in advance about their viewpoint. Then spend time researching their perspective, including Biblical research. Avoid phony straw men, deceptive caricatures that actually misrepresent their viewpoint while pretending to depict it accurately. We can all set up a straw man and burn him, but we will not win anyone by such cheap misrepresentations of their ideas. Whether they understand what we believe or not, they will readily understand that we did not represent their ideas correctly or fairly. This strategy is equivalent to a verbal mugging. A mugger will never become your best friend. Even if we win the argument with Scripture and logic, we may lose the person by our roughshod or abusive demeanor and words.

The first step in Biblical apologetics is to learn the actual viewpoint of others, to learn it so well that, when you depict it back to the person, he/she will congratulate you on being so accurate and fair in your representation.

The next step is to offer gentle, but well thought out, reasons from solid Biblical grounds why that idea is not acceptable. Dr. Ron Rhodes, a respected Christian apologist, makes a convincing point. Most cults and aberrant Christian groups win their converts, not by superior Biblical interpretations, but by making themselves available to people at times of need, by becoming involved in their lives. If we expect to win people away from these groups, we must be better at becoming genuinely involved in their lives, and helping them through difficult times, than the false teachers. Our most convincing Christian apologetic is the life we live, not the words we speak.

As Jesus sent the disciples out, he directed them to give no thought to what they would say. {Mt 10:19} However, this instruction clearly seems uniquely applicable to them, but not to be received as a general rule for all believers going out at all times to teach others. Paul directed Timothy to give intense study to his words, {2Ti 2:15} the mirror opposite of Jesus’ direction to the twelve. By conduct, many contemporary Christians appear to believe that they are still under that special, and temporary, dispensation of the Savior, that God will give them the right words to say at the moment, even if they have given no advance thought to it themselves. They repeatedly fail in their efforts to reach others with their message, but they seldom correct their errant strategy.

In our study passage Peter joins Paul in requiring that we make intense preparation before representing our faith to those who inquire. When Paul represented the faith to Greek philosophers on Mars Hill, he drew from extensive prior study. He knew the writings of ancient Greek poets and philosophers, quoting their words, but applying their message to the Lord Jesus Christ. The words from the Greek poet, " We are the offspring of God," were written centuries earlier in a work entitled " Ode to Zeus." Paul adapted a poem dedicated to Zeus to the Lord Jesus Christ.

When you consider representing your faith to people who do not embrace it, do you enter the discussion as well prepared as Paul obviously was on this occasion? Do you enter the discussion only after extensive study and research into the errors you will face in your discussion? What is your objective? If you enter the discussion with the idea of winning an argument and embarrassing the other person, stop. Repent and pray for God to give you a tender heart toward this person. Our objective is not to win arguments and shame those whom we approach. God directs us to represent Him with " meekness and fear." Under the influence of the Holy Spirit, Peter directs us to enter any interaction with others, well prepared and devoted to winning them to our Lord, both by convincing words and by a godly demeanor. Never practice verbal mugging. Work to win, not annihilate, those who differ from you in their theological perspective. Be ready. Study with a godly objective. Become well prepared to represent your faith in a way that honors Christ, while accurately and fairly representing the views of the other person.

51

[i] Pfeiffer, Charles F., and Everett Falconer Harrison. The Wycliffe Bible Commentary: New Testament, 1Pe 3:10. Chicago: Moody Press, 1962.

PBC: 1Pe 3:15 - -- Our conversation and behaviour is an indicator of what is going on inside us, within our heart. This is as we might expect because we are instructed e...

Our conversation and behaviour is an indicator of what is going on inside us, within our heart. This is as we might expect because we are instructed elsewhere to diligently guard our heart because it sets the course that our lives follow. {Pr 4:23} In scripture the "heart" frequently refers to the deep wellspring of our being, the originating point of our conversation and behaviour. When our mind is centered upon the things of God and His will for us it has a direct and positive influence on the condition of our heart. Conversely, when our mind and affections remove from heavenly things and become centered upon ourselves—pleasing ourselves and advancing our own agenda, then our hearts are influenced in a negative way and our conversation and behaviour will soon reflect it.

In this passage, Peter tells us something about what we ought to be striving for—internally within our heart and externally in our conversation with others. But notice it begins in the heart. He says, "Sanctify the Lord God in your hearts." We do this by recognizing the fundamental relationship that exists between Him and us. He is our Lord and we belong to Him—our time, our substance, and yes—our hearts! Therefore we sanctify the Lord in our hearts by acknowledging that relationship and then consciously acquainting ourselves with His will, as revealed in the scripture, and implementing it in our lives. Simply "knowing" His will for us is not enough. In Lu 6:46 Jesus said, "And why call ye me, Lord, Lord, and do not the things which I say?" To be faithful in our calling we must also "do" His will. Our conversation and behavior will reflect whether or not we have truly sanctified the Lord in our hearts.

Peter says we should "be ready always to give an answer...etc." Are we "ready" to give answer to others about our hope and beliefs? Are we "ready" to share our faith with others? It is a wonderful thing if we are! Sometimes we may think we’re ready when in fact we’re not. Regardless of how learned we may be in the scriptures we are not truly ready to respond to others until we have sanctified the Lord God in our hearts.

The apostle Peter knew what it was like to not be ready and answer hastily. He knew what it was like to give an answer that was Not motivated by a sanctified heart. On several occasions he experienced unnecessary grief because of this. It took a while but he did learn the lesson. Now he shares it with us. Rather than respond to the words and questions of others from a troubled heart, {1Pe 3:14} he says we should give a response from a sanctified heart. A sanctified heart will produce a response that is accompanied by a spirit of meekness and reverential fear.

456

Peter gives us the secret to both effective evangelism and effective apologetics (presenting a convincing case for your faith to those outside the faith).  Most Bible readers miss the central point of the lesson.  Peter directs us to sanctify the Lord in our hearts, not just in our outward appearance.  Then he directs us to be ready, fully equipped and studiously prepared, to give answers to those who ask us to explain our " hope."  The only effective Christian is the believer whose life is so different from the ordinary that it compels those who know this believer to ask the question, " What makes you tick?  Why are you so different from other people who also say that they are Christians?"  If we aren’t living so differently as to compel the question, we are not prepared either for evangelism or for apologetics.  The Christian who lives such a distinguished life is living for the glory of God, not for the glory of his/her personal reputation. 

41

PBC: 1Pe 3:16 - Conversation, // It is better, if the will of God be so... These verses continue the sentence that began with 1Pe 3:15. Christians should live so as to maintain a good conscience at all times. However, in the ...

These verses continue the sentence that began with 1Pe 3:15. Christians should live so as to maintain a good conscience at all times. However, in the context of this lesson we encounter a special occasion that requires a good conscience. As we live before others, our life should be the first faith-witness that others see. The whole premise of this lesson builds on the fact that we live so winsomely, so attractively in our godliness that we honor our faith and invite questions from those who observe us. " What makes you tick? You aren’t like all those pushy, arrogant, obnoxious Christians."

Peter builds his lesson on the premise that we will not win everyone who confronts us. Some will ask us to explain or defend our faith and will be drawn to it. Others will listen and respond with ridicule in hostile unbelief. Rather than being attracted to the faith by our conduct and words, they will be repulsed from it. In fact Peter prepares us that some will use our reasoned explanation of the faith as the basis to speak evil against us. They will depict us in caricature as the most evil and despicable of people, simply because of our faith. Within our culture physical persecution is not practiced. However, verbal and cultural persecution abounds. When unchristian politicians depict us as " radical, right wing bigots," they are indeed practicing a form of persecution. Do you see the hypocrisy in this caricature? " If there is anything I hate, it is radical, right wing, religious bigots who hate people who disagree with them." A cliché comes to mind; the pot calls the kettle black!

The challenge to us in this lesson is obvious. When you face criticism, are you sure it is for your faith? When someone speaks evil of you because of your faith, did you give them reason to speak evil of you? Are you innocent or guilty as charged? Do you deserve their criticism?

Peter builds his whole lesson for godly apologetics on the grounds of our life, not just our words. Our life should be so distinct from the ordinary conduct of those around us that it compels people to ask us about our faith. Consider a few examples.

1. Does your driving on busy streets and freeways display your Christian ethics? A few days ago I was driving to a business appointment. A car cut me off and proceeded to tailgate several cars as the driver displayed inconsiderate, dangerous driving habits. Plastered all over the back of the car were a number of Christian window stickers and bumper stickers. The thought crossed my mind that this person was showing anything but Christian grace in the way he/she was driving. Would this person’s driving attract anyone to Christianity? Hardly!

2. Regardless of the business situation, most employment situations today exhibit a wide division between " labor and management." Each side of the schism is eager to criticize and to put down any flaw displayed by the other side. Given the nature of humanity, error abounds on both sides of the issue. Each side has an abundance of fodder with which to castigate the other side. If you are working in a polarized labor-management setting, do you try to make peace and work for better understanding, or do you join your side, regardless of which side it is, in putting the other people down? In the midst of heated labor disputes both sides need to visit the New Testament teachings on the ethics of being either a master or a servant. Scripture requires a precise attitude and conduct from both! The Bible is neither pro-management nor pro-labor. It is pro-God. Whether your immediate situation puts you on the side of labor or management, your first obligation is to show Christian grace toward the other side, not lead the charge of hostility and increased division toward others. Does your work conduct compel others who work with you to question what drives your winsome godly lifestyle? At one time my career placed me on the side of management. On other occasions I’ve found myself on the side of labor. One of the greatest compliments I’ve received in my secular career was when a client and its employees asked me to attend their bargaining sessions. Each side comfortably invited me to join their private caucuses in which they tried to work out a mutually acceptable agreement. They both trusted me to conduct myself with ethical integrity, regardless of the side with which I was conferring. In several such instances I have been able to craft a respectful and peaceful agreement in the midst of otherwise hostile union-management bargaining.

" Conversation,"

the word translated conversation refers to our whole lifestyle, not just the words we speak. Every aspect of our life should speak the language of Christian integrity with such compelling authenticity that people ask us about our faith. According to Peter’s example, our whole evangelistic approach to those outside the faith grows out of a comprehensive lifestyle that attracts attention to our Lord and to our faith in Him. Words, attitudes, and actions-public or private-should communicate a consistently authentic Christian message. This exhortation precisely mirrors Jesus’ Sermon on the Mount commandment that we have entitled " The Golden Rule," treating others as we would have them treat us. Anger, depression, and most other strong human emotions are incredibly contagious. If someone reacts in anger, what is your first inclination? You feel the sting of their anger and your first thought is to respond with just as much anger as you sense in them. Peter refuses to allow this " lowest common denominator" attitude. Regardless of the emotion or attitude from the other person, he calls us to respond according to our Lord’s example.

" It is better, if the will of God be so..."

We gladly embrace God’s will in terms of our salvation. Are we equally willing to embrace His will when we face difficulties in life, particularly harsh criticism or hateful words from other people? Peter raises a thought-provoking question. When we suffer, is the cause legitimate or not? Are we guilty as charged? If God’s will is so-and it undoubtedly is-we can reach only one correct answer. The only way we can ensure that we suffer in well-doing, not in sin, is that we live consistently, both privately and publicly, according to God’s will. The time existed when we could have ended this thought with no added qualification or explanation. However, in our age we must clarify that God’s will does not appear in our emotional inclinations, but in Scripture and Scripture alone.

Someone has questioned, " Can you trust your conscience?" The answer is a strongly qualified " not likely." Scripture teaches us to retrain our natural conscience by constantly exposing it to Scripture and to the moral and ethical teachings of Scripture. At regeneration God writes His law in our minds. He transforms our conscience, but He does not wholly remove our humanity. From that moment forward we live with a certain internal conflict. We feel the emotional tug of both our fallenness and of our saved nature. We will honor God and fulfill the mandate of Scripture, including our study passage, only as we consistently retrain our conscience to harmonize with our regenerate inclinations. Left to self without constant Biblical nudging, we will spend our life in perpetual conflict, not only in terms of our thoughts, but equally in terms of our actions. We will live inconsistently, sometimes faithful to God and at other times faithful to our sinful dispositions. If we allow this state of conflict to govern our lives, the only question we will prompt in others will highlight our conflicted and inconsistent claims of faith.

Is God’s will true? If we believe it is-how can we doubt it?-Peter exhorts us to live so consistently with our faith and with our regenerate nature as to invite questions from those who know us best. " How can you be so kind to that person who treated you so cruelly?" " How can you keep your calm head when people around you are stampeding in emotional chaos?"

In the next lesson Peter will show us how truly irrelevant the dominant culture around us really is to our faith. What " everyone else" is doing has nothing whatever to do with what God requires of us as His children.

What do you say? Is God’s will true? Does your lifestyle communicate that truth to others? Is your personal lifestyle your strongest apologetic for your faith?

275

PBC: 1Pe 3:18 - -- Occasionally this passage will receive rather bizarre interpretations that isolate it from the context and from the remainder of the Bible. The domina...

Occasionally this passage will receive rather bizarre interpretations that isolate it from the context and from the remainder of the Bible. The dominant aberrant view teaches that, during the three days Jesus’ body was in the grave, he, in spirit, went to hell and preached to the people who died in the flood. Proponents of this view seldom give reasons for this activity, though a few will suggest that Jesus’ preaching actually gave the people in hell a "second chance" to believe and escape their punishment. There are so many profound errors in this idea that it is difficult to know where to start dealing with them.

1. {Lu 23:43} Jesus assures the thief on the cross that they shall be together that day in "paradise." Paul {2Co 12:4} describes "such a man," likely himself, caught up into paradise where he heard things that were not lawful for a man to utter. In the second verse of this chapter Paul states that this man was caught up to the " third heaven." Paul soundly refutes and rejects the idea that paradise is " down," or that it is an intermediate state where all the dead exist from their death to the resurrection and final judgment. Thus, during the three days that his body was buried in the tomb, Jesus did not go to hell, but to heaven.

2. The idea that people who died in their sins receive a second chance for salvation builds on the idea that salvation is all of man, not of God, that salvation relies wholly on man’s acceptance of God’s offer. Scripture presents salvation as God’s gift, not his offer, and makes it secure in the purpose of God and in the atoning, redemptive work of the Lord Jesus Christ. Salvation does not depend on " chance." This idea also contradicts the Biblical fact that salvation occurs in time, not after death. {Heb 9:27-28}

3. Fully as bizarre and as alien to Peter’s teaching in this lesson is the contemporary idea that Jesus went to hell during the three days that his body was buried and became so contaminated by sin that he had to be " born again" to escape that sinful state before his resurrection. Aside from the fact that no Scripture even remotely suggests this idea is the fact that it contradicts every encounter Jesus had with sin and with sinful people throughout the Incarnation. For example, Jewish custom, based on the Old Testament, declared anyone who touched the body of a dead person to be " unclean" for a period of time. He must wait that period of time and undergo a ritual of cleansing before joining society and worship. What happened when Jesus touched dead bodies? He didn’t become unclean, but they came back to life!

Contextually this aberrant view altogether ignores the flowing context of Peter’s letter. The immediate context, not to mention the dominant theme of Peter’s whole letter, has to do with Christian suffering. I will argue that Peter taught that Jesus preached through Noah during the time the ark was under construction. As Noah suffered the acrimony of his neighbors because he faithfully obeyed God, even so the recipients of Peter’s letter faced similar persecution for their faith. As Noah and his family represented a small minority of the culture of his day, even so the recipients of Peter’s letter represented a small minority of their culture. These thoughts lead to the dominant reason for Peter’s point with this lesson from Noah, making the lesson flow with the context and support it. While Christians may well suffer for their faith, they will discover that it is far better to suffer with God than without him. Wayne Grudem offers a number of convincing reasons for this perspective.

1. Noah and his family were a minority surrounded by hostile unbelievers; so are Peter’s readers.

 2. Noah was righteous in the midst of a wicked world. Peter exhorts his readers to be righteous in the midst of wicked unbelievers.

 3. Noah witnessed boldly to those around him. Peter encourages his readers to be good witnesses to unbelievers around them, being willing to suffer, if need be.

 4. Noah realized that judgment was soon to come upon the world. Peter reminds his readers that God’s judgment is certainly coming.

 5. In the unseen ‘spiritual’ realm Christ preached through Noah to unbelievers around him. By saying this Peter can remind his readers of Christ’s work in the unseen spiritual realm and the fact that Christ is also in them, empowering their witness and making it spiritually effective. Therefore, they should not fear but in their hearts should ‘reverence Christ as Lord’ and should ‘always be prepared’ to tell of the hope that is in them. [i]

The question arises, what is the significance of these people, or spirits, being in " prison" ?I suggest that they were in the prison of divine judgment, of a certain judgment soon to come upon them. God normally sends gracious warnings, even to wicked people, before bringing judgment upon them. Consider Jonah’s preaching to the city-state of Nineveh, and, for that matter, a major segment of Jesus’ public ministry devoted to warning the unbelieving Jews of the judgment soon to fall upon them.

This question raises a timely point regarding the Biblical nature of human depravity. Occasionally people will describe depravity as if man in his depraved state is as evil as he possibly can be. Scripture rejects this idea. Biblical depravity describes man as wholly disinterested in God, {Job 21:14} and incapable of rising above his sins so as to please God or to gain his salvation. {Ro 8:5-8; 1Co 2:14} As Creator of the whole physical world, even including non-elect sinners, God receives honor when humans refrain from sin and live with integrity in terms of their interaction with other humans. Such action does not alter their nature from natural to spiritual, but they honor God as their Creator by morally upright conduct. However, even as the Creator and Governor of the natural world, God mercifully sends warnings before judgments against grievous sins. {Ro 1:18-32}

Once Peter has carefully established the relevance of Noah’s faithful, and persecuted, life, he makes a careful figurative application that directly related to his readers and their present situation. In the midst of such intense persecution one might easily decide to believe in Christ, but to keep his faith very private. John describes some people who adopted this strategy during Jesus’ ministry. {Joh 7:13; 19:38} Peter will have nothing to do with timid secret discipleship. He requires a public profession of faith in Christ and belief in his resurrection.

275

[i] Grudem, Wayne, 1 Peter: The Tyndale New Testament Commentary, Leon Morris, General Editor, (Grand Rapids, Michigan: William B. Eerdman’s Publishing Company, 1988), 160-161.

PBC: 1Pe 3:21 - the like figure // Baptism doth also now save us // baptism doth also now save us // by the resurrection of Jesus Christ. "the like figure" This phrase indicates that Peter used Noah and the flood as an instructive figure of the present persecution his readers were suffe...

"the like figure"

This phrase indicates that Peter used Noah and the flood as an instructive figure of the present persecution his readers were suffering for their faith. Now he adds another figure to the list. Baptism, based on a public profession of faith in Christ and belief in his literal death, burial, and resurrection for our sins, is also a figure of the reality of Jesus work that makes any suffering we may face in well-doing worthwhile.

41

"Baptism doth also now save us"

In the context of the suffering Peter’s readers faced for their faith, one could well ask, " How can exposure to public ridicule and persecution save us?" If we merely look at life from an " under the sun" (Solomon and Ecclesiastes) perspective, the question is reasonable. However, if we look at life from an " above the sun" spiritual perspective, the only rational conduct is faithful, and public, obedience to the teachings of the Lord Jesus Christ.

41

In the appendix to the Fulton Convention will be found these words: "We believe the Scriptures teach that there is a time salvation received by the heirs of God distinct from eternal salvation, which does depend upon their obedience. The people of God receive their rewards for obedience in this life only." Please notice that these brethren at Fulton understood that the time salvation was "distinct from" the eternal salvation. It was different from and was separate from the eternal salvation (distinct) They also stated that the benefits were received "in this life only." (timely not eternal) These brethren at Fulton also believed that this time salvation was dependent upon obedience. They stated that it "does depend upon their obedience." This time salvation is achieved only when the obedience is performed. The performance of that obedience is the fulfilling of a condition. In order for time salvation to be achieved a condition will have to be performed. One must "do" something in order to experience "time salvation." Whatever it is that one must do, it will become the performing of a condition. (doing something in this regard is performing a condition) This text in 1Pe 3:21 is a case example of "conditional time salvation".

"baptism doth also now save us"

Peter says that there is a "now salvation" in baptism. He qualifies the kind of "saving" in the parenthetical clause "not the putting away of the filth of the flesh," that is, baptism does not remove indwelling sin, "but the answer of a good conscience toward God," that is, baptism delivers a burdened subject by giving an existential sense of peace and assurance.

90

This phrase has very simple words. This phrase says that baptism is the "saviour." The phrase puts in a time element—"now."

A person who is baptized must put forth some activity—he must make some signal that he desires to be baptized. If nothing else he must "submit" to be baptized. Submitting is "doing." When one submits to be baptized he is fulfilling a condition necessary to the obtaining of this particular saving. The minister who performs the baptism is also "doing" something in procuring this salvation. This is a salvation that involves "works" of creatures and it requires obedient works. And these works do fulfill conditions.

Now for questions from another standpoint. Does water baptism play any part in transporting a person to heaven? Will the failure to be baptized in water prevent a child of God from entering heaven? Does the saving produced by water baptism have anything to do with aiding a person to be in eternal heaven? Water baptism is a different (distinct) saving from the saving that will guarantee entry into eternal heaven. Water baptism is NOT for eternal salvation but water baptism is FOR a "conditional time salvation." Walking into the water and being completely plunged and raised from the water by the minister is a condition that a child of God must meet in order for this baptism that NOW saves to be achieved.

457

A. T. Robertson, the eminent American New Testament Greek scholar, comments on this verse as follows: "The saving by baptism which Peter here mentions is only symbolic (a metaphor or picture as in Ro 6:2-6), not actual as Peter hastens to explain...Peter here expressly denies baptismal remission of sin." The design of baptism is to portray the death, burial, and resurrection of Jesus Christ and to provide the means whereby the recipient of baptism avows belief in this finished work of Christ and publicly identifies his allegiance to Jesus Christ and to His church.

68

Not the putting away of the filth of the flesh

Some, particularly those who believe that baptism has eternal saving power, will offer that this phrase merely refers to the fact that baptism in water is not intended to wash dirt off the body. The inherent weakness of this interpretation becomes obvious when we consider the next phrase of the sentence, but the answer of a good conscience toward God. Dirt on the body should be removed for any number of reasons, social, cultural, and hygienic, but they have nothing to do with one’s conscience where moral issues are weighed.

41

"by the resurrection of Jesus Christ."

Regardless of the culture in which we live or the heat of persecution, those who believe in the Lord Jesus Christ are commanded in Scripture to make a public declaration of their faith by submitting to baptism. Baptism makes a public declaration that you believe in the deity and supreme lordship of the Lord Jesus Christ, that He is God, no less during His Incarnation than today seated with the Father on heaven’s throne. Have you made this public profession of your faith in Him? Does your consistent lifestyle publicly declare your faith in Him, even when it might expose you to persecution or to the ridicule of those around you? What is more important at the end of the day, the approval of wicked people or the approval of God? What is more honoring to God, suffering in evil doing or suffering in well-doing? Will you join righteous Noah and the local body of faithful believers in God as they " preach righteousness"{2Pe 2:5} to a skeptical and unbelieving world around them? Will you live your life so as to become a living witness to the Lord Jesus Christ and to his saving work for you? Tell the world that you believe in Him and that you will serve Him, regardless of the cost. Be baptized and live your life in company and fellowship with people who stand with Him and with Noah!

41

Haydock: 1Pe 3:1 - Let wives Let wives, &c. In the first six verses he gives instructions to married women. 1. By their modest and submissive dispositions to endeavour to gain ...

Let wives, &c. In the first six verses he gives instructions to married women. 1. By their modest and submissive dispositions to endeavour to gain and convert their husbands, shewing them such a respect as Sara did, (whose daughters they ought to esteem themselves) who called Abraham her lord, or master; (Genesis xviii. 12.) 2. To be modest in their dress, without vanity; 3. That women take the greatest care of the hidden man, i.e. of the interior disposition of their heart, which he calls the incorruptibility of a quiet and a meek spirit; 4. Not fearing any trouble, when God's service or the duty to their husbands require it. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Pe 3:7 - Husbands Husbands, &c. His advice to husbands: 1. To carry themselves towards their wives with knowledge, prudence, and discretion; 2. Not in any imperious m...

Husbands, &c. His advice to husbands: 1. To carry themselves towards their wives with knowledge, prudence, and discretion; 2. Not in any imperious manner, but treating their wives with respect and honour, though a wife be the weaker vessel both in body and mind; 3. Considering themselves and their wives to be joint heirs with them of God's graces and favours, both in this world and the next; 4. That their prayers and duty to God be not hindered, neither by too great a fondness and compliance, nor by disagreements and dissensions. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Pe 3:8 - Be ye all of one mind Be ye all of one mind. These instructions are not only for man and wife, but for every one, to whom in general these virtues are recommended. And e...

Be ye all of one mind. These instructions are not only for man and wife, but for every one, to whom in general these virtues are recommended. And every one's duty is comprised in these few words of Psalm xxxiii. "Turn away from evil, and do good....The eyes of the Lord are upon the just....But the countenance of the Lord is against them that do evil things," &c. Nothing can hurt you, and you need fear no menaces, no terrors, if with zeal you follow and adhere to what is good. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Pe 3:15 - Always ready to satisfy Always ready to satisfy, [1] &c. St. Peter would have every Christian, according to his circumstances and capacity, ready to give general reasons of ...

Always ready to satisfy, [1] &c. St. Peter would have every Christian, according to his circumstances and capacity, ready to give general reasons of his faith and hope of salvation, both to infidels and heretics that refuse to believe. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Ad satisfactionem, Greek: pros apologian, ad defensionem.

Haydock: 1Pe 3:18 - Christ....being put to death indeed in the flesh Christ....being put to death indeed in the flesh, dying on the cross for our sins, but brought to life by the spirit. [2] By the spirit here some...

Christ....being put to death indeed in the flesh, dying on the cross for our sins, but brought to life by the spirit. [2] By the spirit here some understand Christ's divine spirit, and power of his divinity, by which he soon raised himself again from death to an immortal life by his glorious resurrection. But others by the spirit rather understand Christ's soul, by which he never died, which always remained united to his divine person, and which the third day he again reunited to his body. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

In quo (spiritu) Greek: en o (pneumati) veniens Greek: poreutheis, profectus. As to the different expositions of this place, see Estius, Cornelius a Lapide, &c. which also Dr. Pearson sets down at large. The late Protestant writers, as may be seen in Dr. Hammond and Dr. Wells, expound this place so as to signify no real descent of Christ's soul into hell, or to any infernal place, but only that his divine spirit sent Noe [Noah] to preach to the spirits in the prison of their body, (i.e. to those wicked men who lived in the days of Noe) to exhort them to repentance. But this exposition, as Dr. Pearson observed, is against the general opinion of the Church and the ancient Fathers; and of which St. Augustine said, (Epis. 163. tom. 2. p. 574) Quis nisi infidelis negaverit, fuisse apud inferos Christum?

Haydock: 1Pe 3:19 - In which // Prison In which (to wit, soul or spirit) also he came, and preached to those spirits who were in prison. The true and common interpretation of this place...

In which (to wit, soul or spirit) also he came, and preached to those spirits who were in prison. The true and common interpretation of this place seems to be, that the soul of Christ, after the separation from the body and before the resurrection, descended to a place in the interior parts of the earth, called hell in that which we call the apostles' creed, (sometimes called Abraham's bosom, sometimes Limbus Patrum [Limbo of the Fathers], a place where were detained all the souls of the patriarchs, prophets, and just men, as it were in prison) and preached to these spirits in this prison; i.e. brought them this happy news, that he who was their Redeemer, who opened as it were heaven's gates. Among these were many who had been formerly at first incredulous in the time of Noe [Noah], who would not take warning from his preparing and building the ark, but it may be reasonably supposed that many of them repented of their sins when they saw the danger approaching, and before they perished by the waters of the deluge, so that they died at least not guilty of eternal damnation; because, though they were sinners, yet they worshipped the true God, for we do not find any proofs of idolatry before the deluge. These then, and all the souls of the just, Christ descended to free from their captivity, from their prison, and to lead them at his ascension triumphant with him into heaven. The Church of England cannot quarrel with this exposition, which seems altogether conformable to the third of their thirty-nine articles, which at present runs thus: "As Christ died for us, and was buried, so also it is to be believed that he went down into hell." It is thus expressed in the articles under queen Elizabeth, in the year 1562; and in the articles put out ten years before, in the year 1552, in the fourth year of king Edward the sixth, the words were: "that the body of Christ lay in the grave until his resurrection, but the spirit which he gave up was with the spirits which were detained in prison, or in hell, and preached to them, as the place in St. Peter testifieth. Dr. Pearson on the fifth article of the creed, writes thus: "There is nothing which the Fathers agree in more, than as to a local and real descent of the soul of Christ into the infernal parts, unto the habitation of the souls departed....This was the general opinion of the Church, as may appear by the testimonies of those ancient writers, who lived successively and wrote in several ages, and delivered this exposition in such express terms as are not capable of any other interpretation." Thus Dr. Pearson. He cites the Fathers. See the edition, in the year 1683, p. 237. (Witham) ---

Prison. See here a proof of a third place, or middle state of souls: for these spirits in prison, to whom Christ went to preach after his death, were not in heaven, nor yet in the hell of the damned; because heaven is no prison, and Christ did not go to preach to the damned. (Challoner) ---

St. Augustine, in his 99th epistle, confesses that his text is replete with difficulties. This he declares is clear, beyond all doubt, that Jesus Christ descended in soul after his death into the regions below, and concludes with these words: Quis ergo nisi infidelis negaverit fuisse apud inferos Christum? In this prison souls would not be detained unless they were indebted to divine justice, nor would salvation be preached to them unless they were in a state that was capable of receiving salvation.

Haydock: 1Pe 3:21 - Baptism // Not the putting away Baptism, &c. That is, the ark was a figure of baptism, which saveth you from the death of the soul; and as no one was saved from the waters of the d...

Baptism, &c. That is, the ark was a figure of baptism, which saveth you from the death of the soul; and as no one was saved from the waters of the deluge but those few eight persons who were in the ark, so no one can enter into heaven if he hath not been baptized, or hath had a desire of it when come to the use of reason. And such persons as are capable of knowing what they receive, must come with the dispositions of faith and a true repentance, which is here called the examination (literally, the interrogation [3]) of a good conscience, who therefore are examined whether they believe in one God and three Persons, &c. (Witham) ---

Baptism is said to be the like form with the water by which Noe [Noah] was saved, because the one was a figure of the other. ---

Not the putting away, &c. As much as to say, that baptism has not its efficacy, in order to salvation, from its washing away any bodily filth or dirt; but from its purging the conscience from sin: when accompanied with suitable dispositions in the party, to answer the interrogations made at that time, with relation to faith, the renouncing of Satan with all his works, and the obedience to God's commands. (Challoner)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Conscientiæ bonæ interrogatio, Greek: eperotema. See Estius.

Haydock: 1Pe 3:22 - -- Jesus now as our Redeemer, and as man, sitteth on the right hand of God, (see Mark xvi. 19.; Colossians i.; Hebrews i. 3. &c.) having swallowed up[4...

Jesus now as our Redeemer, and as man, sitteth on the right hand of God, (see Mark xvi. 19.; Colossians i.; Hebrews i. 3. &c.) having swallowed up[4] (devoured or destroyed) death; having conquered and triumphed over the devil, sin, and death, that by his grace and his merits we might become heirs of eternal life; and is gone into heaven, Angels, &c. being made subject to him. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

These words, found in all Latin copies, and cited by the Latin Fathers, are scarce found in any Greek manuscript and so are omitted in the Protestant translation.

====================

Gill: 1Pe 3:1 - Likewise, ye wives, be in subjection to your own husbands // that if any obey not the word // they also may without the word be won by the conversation of the wives Likewise, ye wives, be in subjection to your own husbands,.... As well as subjects to princes, and servants to masters; though not with the same sort ...

Likewise, ye wives, be in subjection to your own husbands,.... As well as subjects to princes, and servants to masters; though not with the same sort of subjection, but what is suitable to the relation they stand in to their husbands; See Gill on Eph 5:22. See Gill on Col 3:18.

that if any obey not the word; any husband who is an unbeliever, has no love for the Gospel, and gives no credit to it, but despises, disbelieves, and rejects it, the word of truth, of faith, of righteousness, reconciliation, and salvation. The apostle, though he includes all wives, and exhorts them in general to subjection to their own husbands, yet has a particular regard to such as had unbelieving husbands, and who, on that account, were scrupulous of living with them, and of being in subjection to them; and therefore, as the Apostle Paul also did, he advises them to abide with them, and behave well to them, using much the same argument as he does in 1Co 7:10.

they also may without the word be won by the conversation of the wives; for though the ordinary way and means of conversion is the word, faith comes by hearing, and hearing by the word; yet it may be sometimes done without it; or however by the agreeable conversation of professors, and so of religious wives, the hearts of such as were averse to Christianity, and the Gospel, as unbelieving husbands, may be so softened, and wrought upon, as to entertain a better opinion of it, and in process of time be inclined to hear and attend it; the consequence of which may prove their conversion, which is a gaming, or winning of souls; and which, as it is for their good, is for the glory of Christ; for as every soul that is delivered from the power of darkness, and is translated into the kingdom of Christ, is a loss to Satan, it is a gain to Christ, and to his church. The Syriac version, instead of "without the word", reads, "without labour"; as if the winning of unbelieving husbands was easily obtained by the conversation of their wives.

Gill: 1Pe 3:2 - While they behold your chaste conversation // coupled with fear While they behold your chaste conversation,.... Cheerful subjection, strong affection, and inviolable attachment to them, and strict regard to the hon...

While they behold your chaste conversation,.... Cheerful subjection, strong affection, and inviolable attachment to them, and strict regard to the honour of the marriage state, and to the preserving of the bed undefiled with lusts and adulteries:

coupled with fear; with reverence of their husbands, giving them due honour, and showing all proper respect; or with the fear of God, which being before their eyes, and upon their hearts, engages them to such an agreeable conversation.

Gill: 1Pe 3:3 - Whose adorning, let it not be that outward adorning // of plaiting the hair // And of wearing of gold // or of putting on of apparel Whose adorning, let it not be that outward adorning,.... Or that only and principally; let not that be solely or chiefly attended to, nor anxiously so...

Whose adorning, let it not be that outward adorning,.... Or that only and principally; let not that be solely or chiefly attended to, nor anxiously sought after, nor ever in order to allure and ensnare others, or to fill with pride and vanity; nor should it be indecent and luxurious, immodest and immoderate, and unsuitable to the age, character, and station of persons; otherwise clothing is both convenient and necessary; and a decent garb, neat and modest apparel, and what is suitable to the years, rank, and quality of persons, is very commendable: nor are we to suppose that the apostle forbids the use of what follows, but only when used in a luxurious and extravagant manner, and to feed pride and vanity, and encourage, lasciviousness and wantonness:

of plaiting the hair; folding it up in curls, tying it up in knots, and putting it into the form of horns and towers, made by their crisping pins, with their cauls and round tires, like the moon, as was the custom of those times, and still is. There were women among the Jews, whose business it was to plait women's hair; Mary Magdalene is thought to have her name from thence, and that to be her business. The Jews often speak of one Miriam or Mary, by whom they seem to mean the mother of our Lord, who, they say m was ayyvn reyv aldgmmgdla vyer nvyya , "a plaiter of women's hair"; see Gill on Mat 27:56.

And of wearing of gold; or "golden things"; golden ornaments, as bracelets, chains, and rings, or pieces of gold stuck in the plaitings and folds of the hair. The Jewish women used to wear a crown of gold on their head, in the form of the city of Jerusalem, called a golden city n; and which they wore, after its destruction, in memory of it; but with those they might not go out on a sabbath day. R. Akibah, it is said o, made a golden city for his wife, and the wife of Rabban Gamaliel envied her, for it seems this was reckoned a grand dress. Not that the sense is, that every thing of this kind is forbidden, but when used to excess and extravagance; otherwise the daughters of Abraham and Sarah were decked with ear rings, bracelets, and jewels of gold; see Gen 24:22.

or of putting on of apparel; that is "excellent", or precious, as the Syriac version adds; or "of great price", as the Ethiopic; that is beyond a person's ability or rank; the apostle means such apparel as is unbecoming and unsuitable, for he cannot be thought to forbid the putting on of any apparel; but his sense is, that women should not so much regard, and be so intent upon the outward adorning of their bodies, with any sort of clothing, and especially such as does not become them, as the inward adorning of their minds, next mentioned,

Gill: 1Pe 3:4 - But let it be the hidden man of the heart // in that which is not corruptible // even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit // which is in the sight of God of great price But let it be the hidden man of the heart,.... By which is meant internal grace; which gives a beauty and ornament to the soul, far preferable to tha...

But let it be the hidden man of the heart,.... By which is meant internal grace; which gives a beauty and ornament to the soul, far preferable to that which plaiting of the hair, wearing of gold, or any costly apparel, can give to the body: and this is called a man, as it is elsewhere the new man, Eph 4:24 because it has that which answers to what is in man, to his soul, and the powers and faculties of it: this man, or new creature, has a new heart and Spirit; it has a will to that which is spiritually good, and an understanding of divine things, and affections for Christ, for his Gospel, ordinances, ways, and people, and for things above: it has what answers to all the five senses; there is in it a seeing of the Son of God in the glories of his person and the fulness of his grace, and of the invisible things of another world; an hearing of the word, of the voice of Christ, so as to understand it, and live, and to distinguish it from the voice of a stranger; a smelling a sweet savour in the things of God, and of his Spirit, and in the person, blood, righteousness, and sacrifice of Christ; a tasting that the Lord is gracious, his fruits pleasant, and his word sweeter than the honey, or the honeycomb; and a feeling of the burden of sin, an handling of the word of life, a laying hold on Christ, and retaining him: and it has what answers to the parts and members of the body; it has eyes to see with, ears to hear with, hands to receive from Christ, and work with, to his glory, and feet to walk with: it has, in short, all the parts of a man, though these are not yet grown up to perfection; and so that is not yet a perfect man, or arrived to the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ; but a man it is: and "a man of the heart"; it has its seat there; it is an inward principle in the soul; hence it is called the "inner" and "inward man"; and nothing outward is it, as external humiliation for sin, abstinence from it, reformation of life and manners, a profession of religion, and conformity to Gospel ordinances; but it is something inward, as appears from its names, both here and elsewhere; it is called spirit, seed, the root of the matter, and oil in the vessels; and from the seat and subject of it, the heart, the spirit, the understanding and will, the mind, conscience, and affections: and it is the "hidden man"; it is wisdom in the hidden part; it is hidden from the men of the world; they do not know what it is, nor what it means, nor how it is, or can be; the life of it is hidden from them, and the food it lives upon is hidden manna to them, and so are both its joys and sorrows: it is sometimes hidden from the saints themselves; when they walk in darkness, and see no light, they are at a loss to know whether this principle is in them or not; and it is hidden from other believers, till they give an account of it to them, when by comparing it with the word of God, and their own experience, they perceive it is the grace of God in them; and it is hidden from Satan, it is out of his reach, he cannot touch it; though he can touch the old man, and stir up the corruptions of it, yet he cannot touch the new man, that which is born of God, nor hurt or destroy it; but it is not hidden from God; he sees it where men cannot, being covered with a variety of infirmities and sins, and knows it is not where men sometimes think it is. The nature of this hidden man is further expressed by what follows,

in that which is not corruptible; it is opposed to corruptible things, as the outward adorning consists of, such as plaited hair, silver and gold, golden chains, rings, &c. and costly apparel; nor is it corrupt in itself; the old man is corrupt according to its deceitful lusts, but this new man, the hidden man of the heart, has no corruption in it, nor cleaving to it: it is the workmanship of God, and is created in righteousness and holiness; though it is as yet imperfect, there is nothing impure in it; nor can it ever perish, or be lost; it is an incorruptible seed, and will always remain when gold will perish, and the best of garments be moth eaten, and decay:

even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit; this is one, and a principal part of the inward adorning, or hidden man of the heart; and those that are possessed of such a spirit are not easily provoked to anger; patiently bear, and put up with injuries; carry themselves affably and courteously unto all; entertain the meanest thoughts of themselves, and the best of others; do not envy the gifts and graces of others, and are willing to be instructed and admonished by the meanest saint; quietly submit to the will of God, in all adverse dispensations of Providence; and ascribe all they have, and are, to the free grace of God, and reckon that when they have done all they can, they are but unprofitable servants. This grace of meekness, humility, and quietness, is a fruit of the Spirit, and so a part of the hidden man, and is what is very ornamental to a believer; it is his clothing, his inward adorning, and what makes him lovely in the sight of God, and of his people; see 1Pe 5:5 and it is very useful to him in hearing the word, in giving a reason of the hope that is in him, in restoring others, and in showing forth a good conversation; and particularly it greatly becomes, and exceedingly beautifies women professing godliness; who ought to bear much with their husbands, and be in silence, which is what the apostle has a principal regard unto: and to encourage the more to the exercise of it, adds,

which is in the sight of God of great price; which may refer to the whole adorning, to the hidden man of the heart, which is incorruptible, in opposition to the outward adorning, which may be esteemed by men, and be precious in their sight; and particularly to the ornament of meekness and quietness of spirit; for God has a great regard to the meek, humble, and quiet souls; he lifts them up, when cast down; he causes glad tidings to be preached to them; he increases their joy in the Lord; he feeds them, when hungry, to their satisfaction; he guides them in judgment, and teaches them his ways; he will rise up in judgment for them, and reprove with equity for their sake; he gives more grace unto them, and beautifies them with salvation, and will cause them to inherit the earth.

Gill: 1Pe 3:5 - For after this manner in the old time // the holy women also // who trusted in God // being in subjection unto their own husbands For after this manner in the old time,.... In ages past, the years of many generations, since the time that God created man upon earth; in the times b...

For after this manner in the old time,.... In ages past, the years of many generations, since the time that God created man upon earth; in the times before the flood, and after it; in the times of the patriarchs, judges, kings, and prophets of Israel, under the Old Testament dispensation. The apostle exhorts and encourages to this inward dress and ornament, from the antiquity of it: for in this way, and after this fashion,

the holy women also: who were sanctified by the Spirit of God, and lived holy lives and conversations, such as Sarah, Rebekah, Rachel, Leah, Ruth, Hannah, and others:

who trusted in God; that he would send the Messiah, and make good all his promises, judging and believing him to be faithful to his word, and able to fulfil whatever he had promised, as Sarah, Heb 11:11. Such holy and believing women as these are worthy of imitation in their adorning and dress, and who, in the manner before described by the apostle, adorned themselves; or this was the adorning which they sought after, valued, and chiefly regarded; not what was external, but internal: and which lay in meekness and humility, and in a quiet deportment, and in

being in subjection unto their own husbands; according to their original make, and natural relation, and the laws of God, and of creation; which is more becoming and adorning than plaiting of hair, wearing of gold, or costly raiment, and recommends them more, both in the sight of God and men; nothing being a more indecent and uncomely sight than a woman not in subjection to her husband.

Gill: 1Pe 3:6 - Even as Sarah obeyed Abraham // Whose daughters ye are // as long as ye do well Even as Sarah obeyed Abraham,.... Going along with him wherever he went, as from Chaldea to Canaan, and into Egypt, and the land of the Philistines, s...

Even as Sarah obeyed Abraham,.... Going along with him wherever he went, as from Chaldea to Canaan, and into Egypt, and the land of the Philistines, saying the words he put into her mouth, Gen 12:5 and doing the things he bid her do, Gen 18:6 "calling him lord"; or "my lord", as the Syriac and Ethiopic versions render it, and as it appears she did from Gen 18:12. The Jews use this instance to the same purpose the apostle does, saying p,

"the wife ought to take care of the family, to educate her children, to serve and minister to her husband in all things, "calling him her own lord"; which is what we learn from the example of Sarah, who called Abraham her lord, saying, "my lord is old".

Whose daughters ye are; meaning not by natural descent, though they were, these being Jews the apostle writes to, but by grace, and in a spiritual sense; just as those are the children of Abraham, who walk in the steps of his faith, whether they be Jews or Gentiles; so such are the daughters of Sarah, the children of the free woman, who imitate her in faith and obedience; that is, they appear, and are declared to be so:

as long as ye do well: do acts of beneficence and hospitality to strangers, and proper objects, as Sarah did, and all and every good work, according to the will of God, from love, and in faith, and with a view to his glory; and particularly obey and live in subjection to their husbands, as she did: and are not afraid with any amazement; are not deterred from doing well, nor scared by the terrors and menaces of wicked men, either their own husbands, or others; or who with fortitude and intrepidity of mind continue in the discharge of their duty to God and men, and particularly to their husbands, following them, and obeying their lawful commands, as Sarah did in Egypt, and in Gerar, though she exposed herself to great danger: this is said, because women are timorous, and apt to be frightened at everything, from the performance of their duty,

Gill: 1Pe 3:7 - Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them // according to knowledge // particularly giving honour to the wife // As unto the weaker vessel // and as being heirs together of the grace of life // the grace of life // That your prayers be not hindered Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them,.... "With your wives", as the Syriac and Ethiopic versions read; which not only included dwelling together in ...

Likewise, ye husbands, dwell with them,.... "With your wives", as the Syriac and Ethiopic versions read; which not only included dwelling together in the same house, and bedding together in the same bed, but the whole of conjugal conversation, and all the offices and duties incumbent on men in a married state:

according to knowledge; of themselves, and their wives, and the duties belonging to the conjugal state, and the laws of God and man respecting it; and according to their knowledge of the Gospel, and the Christian dispensation, which no ways breaks in upon, but strengthens and encourages to the observance of things belonging to natural religion, and civil life; and according to that superior knowledge of things, which, generally speaking, men have to women; as also wisely, prudently, becoming their characters as men and Christians:

particularly giving honour to the wife; by speaking well of her, and respectfully to her, and by deeds as well as words; not only by clothing her in a decent and becoming manner, suitable to her station; but by providing everything honest and comely for her, food and raiment, a suitable maintenance, all the necessaries, conveniences, and delights of life, that are laudable and proper; in which sense the word honour is used in 1Ti 5:3 and this was agreeably to the doctrine of the Jews q, who say,

"let a man always take care בכבוד אשתו, "of the glory of his wife"; for there is no blessing found in a man's house, but for the sake of his wife, as it is said, Gen 12:16 "and he entreated Abraham well for her sake": and Rabba used to say to the citizens, אוקירו לנשייכו, "honour your wives", that ye may be rich.

And indeed this is what they promised in their marriage contract, which runs thus r:

"be thou unto me for a wife, according to the law of Moses and Israel, and I, by the word of heaven, or God, will worship, ואוקיר, "and honour", and nourish, and take care of thee, according to the custom of the Jews, who worship, and "honour", and nourish, and take care of their wives.

As unto the weaker vessel; so in 1Th 4:4 the wife is called a vessel; see Gill on 1Th 4:4, and here "the weaker"; being so for the most part, both as to strength of body, and endowments of mind; and therefore to be used gently and tenderly, and not be treated with neglect and contempt, or with inhumanity and severity; but as, in every state and condition, the strong are to bear the infirmities of the weak; so a man should bear with, and accommodate himself to the infirmities of his wife, and hide them as much as he can, and not expose them, nor despise her on account of them. It is a saying of the Jews s,

"if thy wife be short of stature, bow thyself, and whisper to her.

The meaning of the proverb is, that he ought to suit himself to her capacity and weakness:

and as being heirs together of the grace of life; not of a natural life, and the good things of it; though husbands and wives partake of the same kind of life, and have a right unto, and share in the same necessaries of life; so Adam and Eve were partakers of the same life, and sharers of the same benefits; and which is a reason indeed why they ought to live lovingly together: but something more is intended; not the external gifts of the Spirit, which, unless in some few instances, are bestowed on men, and not on women; nor the Gospel, and the ordinances of it, which are the means of grace and life; though men and women, called by grace, have an equal right to them, and enjoy them; see Gal 3:28 but grace here, and glory hereafter, are here meant. Some copies, as the Alexandrian, and others, read, "heirs together of the manifold grace of life"; God's own people, without any difference as to sex, as men and women, equally share in grace, as it signifies the love and favour of God; which is the same to all the objects, as to the date of it, which is from everlasting, one not being loved before another; and as to the quality of it, which is free, sovereign, special, discriminating and unchangeable, one being loved not with one sort of love, another with another; and as to the quantity of it, it not admitting of more or less; and as to the duration, which is for ever: and so they are heirs of it, as it denotes the blessings of grace; being equally heirs of, and sharers in electing, redeeming, justifying, pardoning, and adopting grace: and as it may intend the internal graces of the Spirit, as faith, hope, and love; which as to their principles are the same in all the saints, though different as to the degree of the exercise of them: and which may be called "the grace of life"; or "living grace", as some copies and the Complutensian edition read, and so the Arabic version, because by it men and women, who were dead in trespasses and sins, are quickened; and in distinction to counterfeit grace, which differs as much from true grace, as the picture of a man from a living man; and because it lives for ever, and never dies, and gives a meetness for eternal life, which it springs up to, issues in, and is inseparably connected with. Moreover, by it may be meant eternal life and salvation, of which the saints, without any difference as to sex, are heirs of: so some copies read, "heirs of manifold grace, and life"; by the former, meaning grace here, and by the latter, glory hereafter; which is a life of vision of God, and uninterrupted communion with him; of perfection and pleasure, and which will last for ever; and may be called

the grace of life, because it is the free gift of God's grace: and agreeably the Syriac version renders it, "the gift of eternal life"; and the Ethiopic version, glorious life: and this is represented as an inheritance, being what belongs only to the children; and which they have not by their own works, as an acquisition of theirs, but by the free grace of their heavenly Father, and as his gift and bequest unto them. Now all the saints, of whatever state, condition, or sex, are equally heirs of this inheritance; for there is but one inheritance, one kingdom, one crown of glory, which all shall enjoy; and whatever disparity there may be, particularly between husband and wife, in their natural relation, there is none in the things of grace, and with regard to the kingdom of glory; and which is an argument why husbands should dwell peaceably and comfortably with their wives, and give all due honour to them, since they are upon a par in spiritual things, there being neither male nor female in Christ Jesus, and because they are now joint heirs of, and shall equally share in eternal life and happiness,

That your prayers be not hindered: as they would be were they not to dwell together; or should not the husband give honour to his wife, and take care of her as he ought to do: hence would arise strifes and quarrels, when they could not cordially, and to edification, join together in prayer; nor would such prayers, put up in wrath, be acceptable unto God, who requires that men should lift up holy hands everywhere, whether in public, or in private, in God's house, or in their own houses, without wrath and doubting. From hence we may observe, that family prayer is a duty incumbent on professors of religion, and great care should be taken that it be not neglected and hindered,

Gill: 1Pe 3:8 - Finally, be ye all of one mind // having compassion one of another // love as brethren // be pitiful // be courteous Finally, be ye all of one mind,.... Not that the apostle was about to conclude his epistle; but having finished his exhortations respecting the obedie...

Finally, be ye all of one mind,.... Not that the apostle was about to conclude his epistle; but having finished his exhortations respecting the obedience of subjects to magistrates, and of servants to their masters, and the duties incumbent on husbands and wives, he proceeds to sum up what he had further to say, in general rules; which regarded all sorts of Christians, magistrates and subjects, masters and servants, husbands and wives, parents and children, old and young, rich and poor, of whatsoever state, age, sex, or condition; and so the Arabic version renders it, "the sum of the commandment is"; and the Ethiopic version, "the sum of all is this"; namely, what follows; "be ye all of one mind"; whatever difference there might be in their natural and civil relation and character; and which is to be understood not of the sameness of affection to one another, or of an humble and condescending spirit, disposition, and carriage to each other, for these are expressed in some following exhortations; but of sameness of judgment with respect to the doctrines and ordinances of the Gospel, in which saints should be perfectly joined together in the same mind, and in the same judgment; for as the church is but one body, of which Christ is the head, there should be but one mind in it; even as there is but one Spirit of God, who convinces, enlightens, and leads into truth; and but one heart and way, given to fear the Lord; and there is but one hope of our calling, or to which we are called; and one way to it, and therefore ought to agree in everything respecting the way, the truth, and the life; though in things which do not, should bear with one another; and there is but one Lord, who gives the same laws and ordinances to one as to another, and which are to be kept alike by all; and there is but one faith, one doctrine of faith, which is uniform and all of a piece, and but one rule and standard of faith, the sacred Scriptures, and but one baptism, to be administered in the same way, and upon the same sort of subjects, and in the same name of the Father, Son, and Spirit; and but one God and Father of all; all belong to the same family, and therefore should preserve a unity of spirit and mind, and speak the same things; which is necessary to carry on the worship of God, honourably and regularly, to the glorifying of him, and for the peace, comfort, and safety of the churches of Christ:

having compassion one of another; or sympathizing with each other, both in prosperity and adversity, whether in temporal or spiritual things; rejoicing with them that rejoice in Christ, make their boast of him, and have communion with him, and who are also blessed with health of body, and a competency of the good things of this life; and weeping with them that weep for the loss of goods, relations, &c. and being in bonds and afflictions; or because of sin, the absence of Christ, and the temptations of Satan; and being concerned also for such who are fallen into immorality, or error, and heresy; endeavouring to restore them out of the one or the other, in a spirit of meekness and tenderness: to all which they should be engaged by the example of Christ, the sympathizing high priest; by the consideration of the divine compassion to them, both in a providential way, and in a way of grace; and on account of their union and relation to each other, as members of the same body:

love as brethren; not in a natural and civil, but in a spiritual relation, being children of God, and brethren of Christ, and in a Gospel church state; and whose love to each other ought to be universal, fervent, without dissimulation, and as Christ has loved them; and which should show itself in praying for each other, in bearing one another's burdens, in forgiving each other, in admonishing in love, and building up one another on their most holy faith, and communicating to each other both in temporals and spirituals: and of a very excellent nature is it; it is the bond of perfectness, and evidence of regeneration; the glory and ornament of a profession, and without which it is nothing; and what renders the communion of the saints with each other pleasant and profitable, comfortable to themselves, and honourable in the eyes of others; and to which they should be induced from the consideration of the love of God and Christ unto them, and from their relation to each other, as brethren:

be pitiful; to those that are in distress; put on bowels of mercy, and relieve and succour them, distributing cheerfully to their necessities:

be courteous; gentle and affable, carrying it friendly to one another, seeking those things which may be most agreeable to each other, shunning all moroseness, stiffness, and incivility. The Vulgate Latin version renders it by two words, "modest, humble": not proud, haughty, and overbearing, but condescending to each other, and to men of low estates; and so the Syriac version renders it, "kind and meek".

Gill: 1Pe 3:9 - Not rendering evil for evil // or railing for railing // but contrariwise blessing // knowing that ye are thereunto called Not rendering evil for evil,.... Doing an ill thing in return to one that has done ill to you, and in a way of revenge for it; which is contrary to wh...

Not rendering evil for evil,.... Doing an ill thing in return to one that has done ill to you, and in a way of revenge for it; which is contrary to what is before advised to, and which is taking God's prerogative and work out of his hands, whose vengeance is, and which is to be overcome of evil:

or railing for railing; returning ill language to such as have given it, but rather should imitate Christ, who, when he was reviled, reviled not again, 1Pe 2:23 and whose advice is, instead of returning injuries, blows, or words, to turn to him that smites on the right check the other also and to bless them that curse, do good to them that hate, and pray for them that persecute, Mat 5:39 and which is here directed to:

but contrariwise blessing; praying for a blessing on them; for if we are to do so for our enemies, for them that hate us, despitefully use and persecute us, as did Christ, Stephen the protomartyr, and the apostles, then much more our fellow Christians who may do us an injury or speak evil of us, or to us: who seem to be chiefly intended: the argument to persuade to it follows,

knowing that ye are thereunto called; referring either to what goes before being called by grace to the discharge of all the above duties exhorted to, and particularly to suffer patiently all injuries and affronts; and instead of making returns in the same way, to bless and pray for those that have hurt us, either by words or deeds; see 1Pe 2:20 or to what follows, that ye should inherit a blessing; temporal blessing or blessings; for godliness has the promise of this life and godly persons shall not want any good thing; and even while the blessings of others are cursed they have their outward mercies with a blessing, and they are blessings indeed to them; wherefore, the little they may have is better than the large affluence of others: and also spiritual blessing, or blessings; such as peace of conscience, the pardon of all their sins a justifying righteousness adopting grace, all supplies of grace from Christ, his presence and communion with him: and also an eternal one, even life for evermore; called so, because it springs from the free favour, good will, and blessing of God, and which its being an inheritance also shows; and because such that enjoy it are eternally and unspeakably happy.

Gill: 1Pe 3:10 - For he that will love life // and see good days // let him refrain his tongue from evil For he that will love life,.... This, with what follows here and in the two next verses, are taken out of Psa 34:12 and are produced as a proof of wha...

For he that will love life,.... This, with what follows here and in the two next verses, are taken out of Psa 34:12 and are produced as a proof of what is before said; that it is a good man's duty not to do or speak evil in return for what is done or said to him; but on the contrary, it becomes him to avoid evil, do good, and seek peace as much as possible, and leave it with a righteous God to vindicate him and his cause, who will not fail to do it; and that such shall inherit the blessing both here and hereafter: in the psalm, these words are put by way of question, "what man is he that desireth life?" that wills it with pleasure, that loves it with a love of complacency and delight? and which is to be understood, not of natural life; for what man is there that do not love that? love of a natural life is natural to men; it is a first principle in nature to desire life, and a preservation of it, and to a great length; a man will give all that he has for it, as Satan said, Job 2:4, but both of a spiritual life, a life of faith on Christ, communion with him, and holiness from him; the life of God, or to live soberly, righteously, and godly, which carnal men are alienated from, and enemies to, and cannot desire, only spiritual men; and of an eternal one; and so some of the Jewish interpreters u understand by life and good days, in the psalm, such as are both in this world, and in that which is to come:

and see good days; not the days of this life, which are evil, even the days of a good man, Gen 47:9 and the more so, the longer he lives; for the days of old age are evil days, in which there is no pleasure, Ecc 12:1, unless such days are meant, in which much good is done to the honour and glory of God, and in which gracious souls enjoy much of God, and see and taste of his grace and goodness in the land of the living; though, rather, the good days of eternity, even length of days for ever and ever, which holy men of God shall see, and enjoy in the other world, when they shall be possessed of fulness of joy, and of pleasure for evermore: in the psalm it is, "and loveth many days, that he may see good"; desires a blessed eternity of good things:

let him refrain his tongue from evil; bridle that unruly member, which has a world of iniquity in it; let him keep it as with a bit, from the vices incident to it; from all obscene words, filthy and corrupt communication, whatever is unsavoury and unedifying; from lying, cursing, swearing, and particularly from railing and evil speaking, in return for such language, which is chiefly meant; as well as from belching out blasphemies against God, and damnable heresies among men; for whoever would be thought a religious man, and lays no restraint on his tongue, his religion is a vain thing, Jam 1:26 and his lips that they speak no guile; as flatterers do, who speak that with their mouth which does not agree with their heart, and so beguile and deceive persons; and as false teachers, who use dishonest arts, walk in craftiness, handle the word of God deceitfully, use ambiguous phrases, and words of double meaning, and with their good words, and fair speeches, deceive the hearts of the simple but such things do not become persons that seek for glory, honour, and immortality; that profess to be Israelites indeed; in these guile should not be found in their lips, nor in their lives,

Gill: 1Pe 3:11 - Let him eschew evil // and do good // let him seek peace and ensue it Let him eschew evil,.... Avoid all kinds of evil, hate it, abstain from the appearance of it, and have no fellowship with it; and particularly should ...

Let him eschew evil,.... Avoid all kinds of evil, hate it, abstain from the appearance of it, and have no fellowship with it; and particularly should avoid rendering evil for evil, or taking revenge on persons for doing him ill:

and do good; everything that is good, all good works, according to the will of God, in the exercise of faith, from a principle of love, and with a view to the glory of God; and without trusting to them, and depending upon them for life and salvation; and particularly do good for evil; do good to all men, acts of kindness and beneficence, even to enemies, and especially to them that are of the household of faith. The Jewish interpreters w on the psalm from whence these words are taken observe, that in the first of these clauses are contained all the negative precepts, whose number with them is three hundred, sixty, and five; and in the latter of them, all the affirmative precepts, which amount to two hundred and forty eight:

let him seek peace and ensue it: "or pursue it"; let him seek after it, in the world, and with all men, as much as possible, yea, with his very enemies; and live a peaceable and quiet life, in the kingdom, city, town, and neighbourhood where he is; and particularly in the church of God, and with the saints; which he should seek with all diligence and eagerness, and pursue with all rigour to the utmost of his power; and endeavour to cultivate all he can, and follow the things which make for it. The note of one of the Jewish commentators x on this passage is, "seek peace", in thine own place; "and pursue it", in another place,

Gill: 1Pe 3:12 - For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous // and his ears are open to their prayers // but the face of the Lord is against them that do evil For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous,.... Who are so not merely in the sight of men, but of God; nor in their own account, and by their own...

For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous,.... Who are so not merely in the sight of men, but of God; nor in their own account, and by their own works, but in the esteem of God, through the imputation of the righteousness of his Son unto them: and because he loves this righteousness, and is well pleased with it, seeing by it his law is magnified and made honourable, therefore his countenance beholds with pleasure and delight those righteous ones who are clothed with it; his eyes of omniscience, love, care, and protection, are always upon them, watching over them, delighting in them, running to and fro in the earth on behalf of them; he sees every injury done them, and in his own time and way will do them justice; which is a reason why they should not take vengeance themselves, but leave it with him, whose it is:

and his ears are open to their prayers; or "prayer"; in the Hebrew text, "to their cry"; he is a God hearing prayer, and his righteous ones have his ear; he hears them while they are speaking, and will sooner or later answer, and avenge his elect, who cry unto him day and night; for as he has an ear to hear their cries, which is not heavy, he has an arm to save them, which is not shortened; and this is another reason why they should behave as before directed, and which is still strengthened by what follows,

but the face of the Lord is against them that do evil; it is added in the psalm, "to cut off the remembrance of them from the earth": by "the face of the Lord" is meant, as the Jewish writers y interpret it, the anger of the Lord; it intends, not his kind, pleasant, and loving countenance, but his angry one with the former he beholds the upright, and with it he looks upon his righteous ones; but the latter is upon and against the wicked, and is dreadful and intolerable, and the consequence of it is everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power,

Gill: 1Pe 3:13 - And who is he that will harm you // if ye be followers of that which is good And who is he that will harm you,.... Or "can harm you". God will not; for his eyes are upon the righteous, to protect and defend them, and, his ears ...

And who is he that will harm you,.... Or "can harm you". God will not; for his eyes are upon the righteous, to protect and defend them, and, his ears are open to their cries, to avenge them; he is on their side, and he is the only lawgiver that is able to save, and to destroy. Christ will not; for when he came the first time, it was not to condemn, but to save; and when he comes a second time, though he will rule the wicked with a rod of iron, and dash them in pieces as a potter's vessel; yet his people, who are his jewels, he will spare, as a man spares his only son. Good angels will not; these rejoice at the conversion, and in the salvation of sinful men, encamp about the saints, and are ministering spirits to them: nor the devil; though he would devour, he cannot; for greater is he that is in the saints, than he that is in the world: nor can sin; for though it wars against them, it shall not have the dominion over them; and though it often breaks in upon their peace and comfort, it cannot damn and destroy their souls: nor the law; for though it pronounces guilty, and curses those that are under it, and are of the works of it, yet since Christ has fulfilled it for his people, by obeying its precepts, and bearing its penalty, the curse, it lies not against them, nor can it inflict any punishment on them: nor the men of the world; who hate and persecute the saints; these can do them no real harm; they cannot hurt their grace, which shines the brighter, being tried and proved in the furnace of affliction; they cannot destroy their peace and comfort by all the trouble they give them; all the harm they can do them is to their bodies; they can do none to their souls; and even all the evil things they do to their bodies work together for their good; and they must be very wicked men that will do harm in any respect to such as behave well in states, cities, towns, or neighbourhoods:

if ye be followers of that which is good; of God, who is essentially, originally, and infinitely good, and does good to all his creatures, by imitating him in holiness and righteousness, in kindness, mercy, and beneficence; and of Christ, the good Shepherd, following him in the exercise of grace, as of humility, love, patience, &c. and in the discharge of duty; and of good men, the apostles of Christ, the first churches, faithful ministers, and all such who through faith and patience have inherited the promises, and that both in doctrine and practice; and of all good things, whatever is true, honest, just, pure, lovely, and of good report, particularly righteousness, godliness, faith, love, patience, and meekness. Some copies, as the Alexandrian, and others, read, "zealots", or "zealous of good"; of good works, as in Tit 2:14 and so the Vulgate Latin, Syriac, and Ethiopic versions.

Gill: 1Pe 3:14 - But and if ye suffer for righteousness sake But and if ye suffer for righteousness sake,.... For the doctrine of justification by the righteousness of Christ, which was the great stumbling block...

But and if ye suffer for righteousness sake,.... For the doctrine of justification by the righteousness of Christ, which was the great stumbling block to the Jews, and on account of which they persecuted the Christians; it being not after man, nor according to the carnal reason of men, and was contrary to the method they had fixed on, and what excluded boasting in them, and was thought to be a licentious doctrine; and for a righteous cause, for professing Christ and his Gospel; for vindicating both which, whoever did must expect to suffer persecution; and also for living soberly, righteously, and godly; for by a religious life and conversation the saints are separated from the world, and are distinguished from them, which in effect sets a mark of infamy and reproach upon them; and saints, by an agreeable life, reprove others, and condemn them; all which irritate and provoke them to hate and persecute them: now these words prevent an objection that might be made to what is before said; that none can, or will harm such as are followers of good; whereas it is a clear case, that saints for righteousness sake are hurt, and do suffer in their persons, characters, and estate; they are reproached and reviled, and often suffer confiscation of goods, imprisonment, and even death itself; to which the apostle answers, by granting it, and supposing that this should be the case, as it sometimes is; yet no hurt is done them, they are still happy persons: happy are ye; since suffering on such an account is a gift of God, even as believing in Christ itself is, and is a real honour done to a person, and to be so accounted; moreover, such generally enjoy much of the presence of God, and the comforts of his Spirit; the Spirit of God and of glory rests upon them; hereby the graces of the Spirit of God in them are exercised, tried, and proved, and shine out the brighter; the faith and hope of other Christians are strengthened, and God is glorified; and besides, the kingdom of heaven, the crown of life, and eternal glory, with which their sufferings are not to be compared, are theirs, and which they shall certainly enjoy: and be not afraid of their terror, neither be troubled; referring to a passage in Isa 8:12 and the meaning is either, be not afraid with the same sort of fear as wicked men are; with a worldly slavish fear of men, and of the loss of worldly things, and of life itself: or, afraid of them, as the Syriac version renders it; who inject fear into you; do not be afraid of their revilings and reproaches, of their threatenings and menaces, and even of death itself by them, which is the utmost they can do; do not be troubled at anything they say or do to you; since nothing can harm you, since God is on your side, Christ has delivered you from this present evil world, and saved you out of the hands of every enemy; and since the love of God, which casteth out fear, is shed abroad in your hearts, and you are encompassed with it, and nothing can separate you from it.

Gill: 1Pe 3:15 - But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts // and be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you with meekness and fear But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts,.... Still referring to Isa 8:13 not by making him holy, which need not, nor cannot be, he being essentially,...

But sanctify the Lord God in your hearts,.... Still referring to Isa 8:13 not by making him holy, which need not, nor cannot be, he being essentially, infinitely, and perfectly holy; but by declaring and proclaiming his holiness, as the seraphim in Isaiah's prophecy, and the four living creatures in the Revelation did; and by glorifying of him, praising and applauding all his perfections, and among the rest, this of his holiness, and giving thanks at the remembrance of it; which he has so much displayed in the works of creation, providence, redemption, and grace; hence the Arabic version renders it, bless the Lord God in your hearts: the Lord God is sanctified by his people externally, when they regard his commands, attend his ordinances, and call upon his name, and praise him; but here an internal sanctification of him, a sanctification of him in their hearts, is intended, and what is opposed to the fear of men, and unbelief, and lies in the exercise of the grace of fear upon him; see Isa 8:13 and which has for its object his goodness, and is a fruit of the covenant of his grace, and is a child like and godly fear; and in the exercise of faith upon him, upon his covenant and promises, his faithfulness, and power to help, assist, and preserve; whereby glory is given to him, a witness borne to his truth, and he is sanctified: some copies, as the Alexandrian, and one of Stephens's, read, sanctify the Lord Christ; and so read the Vulgate Latin and Syriac versions; and certain it is that he is intended in Isa 8:13 as appears from 1Pe 3:14 compared with Rom 9:33.

and be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you with meekness and fear; by the hope that is in the saints, is not designed the grace of hope itself, which is given to them, and implanted in them in regeneration; the reason, ground, and foundation of which are, the love, grace, and mercy of God, through Christ, and his person, blood, righteousness, sacrifice, and redemption; but the Gospel, the whole Christian doctrine, the doctrine of faith, and which the Syriac version here calls the "hope of faith"; and the profession of Christianity, called in Heb 10:23, the profession of hope; in which persons profess their hope of eternal life and happiness through Christ, as doctrine of the Gospel directs them to. Now, a "reason" of this is to be given; not that they are to account for the Gospel, upon the foot of carnal reason; for that is not of men, nor according to the carnal reason of men; nor is it to be thought that every Christian should be capable of defending the Gospel, either in whole, or in part, by arguments and reasons, in a disputatious way, or to give a reason and argument for every particular truth; but that he should be well acquainted with the ground and foundation of the Christian religion; at least, with the first principles of the oracles of God, and be conversant with the Scriptures, and be able to point out that in them, which is the reason of his holding this and the other truth, though he is not able to give a gainsayer satisfaction, or to stop his mouth: and this is to be done with meekness and fear; with meekness, before men; in an humble modest way; not with an haughty air, and in a morose and surly manner, which serves only to irritate and provoke: and with fear; either of God, and so the Ethiopic Version renders it, with the fear of the Lord; considering the subject of the argument, and the importance of it, and how much the honour of God is concerned in it; and taking care lest the answer should be delivered in a light, trifling, and negligent manner, and that no part of truth be dropped or concealed, in order to please men, and be screened from their resentments; or with all due reverence of, and respect to men, to superiors, to the civil magistrates, who may ask the reason; for they are to be treated with honour and esteem, and to be answered in an handsome and becoming manner, suitable to the dignity of their persons and office; as the sanhedrim was by Stephen; and as Felix, Festus, and Agrippa, by the Apostle Paul: and this answer, or reason, is to be given to every man; that has authority to ask, and that asks in a modest manner, and with a reverence suitable to the subject; for the phrases, "with meekness and fear", may respect him that asks the reason, as well as him that gives the answer; for that which is holy is not to be given to dogs, to impudent persons, mockers and scoffers, nor are pearls to be cast before swine, filthy and irreverent persons; see Mat 7:6 the Alexandrian copy, and some others, and so the Vulgate Latin version, read, "but with meekness and fear"; for if it is not asked in such a way, there is no obligation to give an answer: and this is to be given "always"; whenever it is asked in such a manner, and by proper persons; when there is a necessity of it, and as opportunity offers: and saints should be always "ready to" give and therefore it becomes them daily and diligently to search the Scriptures, meditate on them, and get all the help and assistance they can, to lead them into an acquaintance with them, that they may be so; for though the apostles had extraordinary assistance promised them, and therefore were bid not to consider beforehand what they should say, when brought before kings and princes; yet this is not to be expected by ordinary persons, nor in ordinary cases. Agreeably to this is the advice of R. Eleazar z,

"be diligent to learn the law, and know what thou shouldest answer to an Epicure,

or heretic: says R. Jochanan a,

"in every place where the Sadducees object, תשובתן בצידן their answer is at their side,

or ready; that is, in the same Scriptures on which they form their objections,

Gill: 1Pe 3:16 - Having a good conscience // that whereas they speak evil of you as of evildoers // they may be ashamed that falsely accuse your good conversation in Christ Having a good conscience,.... Meaning not the faculty of the conscience itself, which is naturally evil, and defiled with sin, and is only made good b...

Having a good conscience,.... Meaning not the faculty of the conscience itself, which is naturally evil, and defiled with sin, and is only made good by the sanctification of the Spirit, and the sprinkling of the blood of Jesus, by which the heart is sprinkled from it, and that itself purged from dead works; but a life and conversation according to the dictates of such a conscience, in the uprightness and sincerity of it, and by the grace of God, and according to the Gospel, and whereby the doctrines of it are adorned; for, as besides internal sanctification of God, or a fearing of him, and believing in him with the heart, there must be a profession of him with the mouth, and a reason of faith and hope given verbally, when there is an occasion for it; so to both must be added a conscientious discharge of duty, both to God and men, which is one way of defending and recommending the doctrines of the Gospel:

that whereas they speak evil of you as of evildoers; as vain, proud, haughty, and arrogant persons, as seditious men, enemies to order and civil magistracy; as such that speak evil of dignities, and despise government; when they shall see your modest and humble deportment in the world, and before them, and with what reverence and esteem you treat them:

they may be ashamed that falsely accuse your good conversation in Christ; which was in consequence of their being in Christ, and made new creatures by him, and was as became his Gospel, and by and under the influence of his grace and Spirit.

Gill: 1Pe 3:17 - For it is better, if the will of God be so // that ye suffer for well doing // than for evil doing For it is better, if the will of God be so,.... For all things are ordered by the will of God, even all the sufferings and afflictions of the saints; ...

For it is better, if the will of God be so,.... For all things are ordered by the will of God, even all the sufferings and afflictions of the saints; and which is a reason why they ought to be patiently submitted to, and bore: and "better" it is, more honourable and profitable,

that ye suffer for well doing; for believing in Christ, professing him and his Gospel, giving a free and open reason for so doing, and for exercising a good conscience, and living godly in Christ Jesus:

than for evil doing; as a murderer, a thief, an evildoer, or a busy body in other men's matters, 1Pe 4:15.

Gill: 1Pe 3:18 - For Christ also hath once suffered for sins // the just for the unjust // that he might bring us to God // being put to death in the flesh // but quickened by the Spirit For Christ also hath once suffered for sins,.... Not his own, for he committed none, but for the sins of his people; in order to obtain the remission ...

For Christ also hath once suffered for sins,.... Not his own, for he committed none, but for the sins of his people; in order to obtain the remission of them, to make reconciliation for them, and to take and put them away, and finish and make an end of them; which sufferings of his, on account of them, were many and great: he suffered much by bearing the griefs, and carrying the sorrows of his people, whereby he became a man of sorrows, and acquainted with griefs, from his cradle to his cross; and from the temptations of Satan, being in all points tempted, as his members are, though without sin; and from the contradiction of sinners against him, in his name, credit, and character, abusing him as the worst of men; and he suffered in his soul, from the wrath of God, and curses of the law, which lay upon him; and in his body, by many buffetings, scourges, wounds, and death itself, even the death of the cross; and which being the finishing part of his sufferings, is chiefly here meant. The Alexandrian copy reads, "died for you"; and the Vulgate Latin, Syriac, and Ethiopic versions read, "died for our sins"; and this he did once, and but once; he died once, and will die no more; he was offered up once, and will be offered up no more; there is no more offering, or sacrifice for sin; the reason is, because his one offering is sufficient to take away sin, which the legal sacrifices were not, and therefore were often offered; and the reason why this his one offering, or once suffering and dying, is sufficient, is, because of his divine nature, or eternal Spirit, by which he offered himself, and gave infinite virtue to his sacrifice and satisfaction: now, this is an argument for suffering patiently; since Christ, the head, has also suffered, and therefore, why not the members? and since he has suffered for their sins, therefore they should not grudge to suffer for his sake; and seeing also their sufferings are but once, in this life only, and as it were but for a moment, and not to be compared with his sufferings for them; and especially when it is considered what follows:

the just for the unjust; Christ, the holy and just one, who is holy in his nature, and righteous in his life and actions, which were entirely conformable to the righteous law of God, and upright and faithful in the discharge of his office, and therefore called God's righteous servant; he suffered, and that not only by unjust men, by the Jews, by Pilate, and the Roman soldiers, but for and in the room and stead of unjust men, sinners, and ungodly, who were destitute of righteousness, and full of all unrighteousness; and since he did, it need not be thought hard, or strange, that sinful men should suffer at the hands of others; and still it should be borne with the greater patience, since Christ not only suffered for them, but since an end is answered by it, as is here suggested:

that he might bring us to God; nigh to God, who, with respect to communion, were afar off from him; and in peace and reconciliation with him, who were enemies to him by wicked works; and that they might have freedom of access, with boldness, unto God, through his precious blood, and the vail of his flesh; and that he might offer them unto God, as the Vulgate Latin and Syriac versions render it; as a sacrifice acceptable unto God, presenting them to him unblamable and unreproveable in his sight; that he might bring them into his grace and presence here, and, as the great Captain of their salvation, bring them to him in glory hereafter:

being put to death in the flesh; in the human nature: flesh includes the whole of human nature, both body and soul; for though the body only dies, yet death is the dissolution of the union between them both; and such was Christ's death; for though the union between the two natures continued, yet his body and soul were disunited; his body was left on the cross, and his soul, or Spirit, was commended to God, when his life was taken from the earth, and he was put to death in a violent manner by men:

but quickened by the Spirit; raised from the dead by his divine nature, the Spirit of holiness, the eternal Spirit, by which he offered himself, and by virtue of which, as he had power to lay down his life, so he had power to take it up again; when he was also justified in the Spirit, and all the elect in him. Now, as the enemies of Christ could do no more than put him to death in the flesh, so the enemies of his people can do no more than kill the body, and cannot reach the soul; and as Christ is quickened and raised from the dead, so all his elect are quickened together, and raised with him, representatively, and shall, by virtue of his resurrection, be raised personally, and live also; which is no inconsiderable argument to suffer afflictions patiently, and which is the design of this instance and example of the sufferings, death, and resurrection of Christ.

Gill: 1Pe 3:19 - By which also he went and preached unto the spirits in prison. By which also he went and preached unto the spirits in prison. Various are the senses given of this passage: some say, that Christ, upon his death, we...

By which also he went and preached unto the spirits in prison. Various are the senses given of this passage: some say, that Christ, upon his death, went in his human soul to hell; either, as some, to preach to the devils and damned spirits, that they might be saved, if they would; and, as others, to let them know that he was come, and to fill them with dread and terror; but though hell may be meant by the prison, yet the text does not say that he went unto it, or preached in it; only that the spirits were in it, to whom he sometimes went, and preached; nor is his human soul, but his divine nature meant, by the Spirit, by which he went and preached to them: and as for the ends proposed, the former is impracticable and impossible; for after death follows judgment, which is an eternal one; nor is there any salvation, or hope of salvation afterwards; and the latter is absurd, vain, and needless. Others, as the Papists, imagine the sense to be, that Christ, at his death, went in his human soul, into a place they call "Limbus Patrum", which they suppose is meant by the prison here, and delivered the souls of the Old Testament saints and patriarchs from thence, and carried them with him to heaven; but this sense is also false, because, as before observed, not the human soul of Christ, but his divine nature, is designed by the Spirit; nor is there any such place as here feigned, in which the souls of Old Testament saints were, before the death of Christ; for they were in peace and rest, in the kingdom of heaven, in Abraham's bosom, inheriting the promises, and not in a prison; besides, the text says not one word of the delivering of these spirits out of prison, only of Christ's preaching to them: add to all this, and which Beza, with others, observes, the apostle speaks of such as had been disobedient, and unbelievers; a character which will not agree with righteous men, and prophets, and patriarchs, under the former dispensation: others think the words are to be understood of Christ's going to preach, by his apostles, to the Gentiles, as in Eph 2:17 who were in a most miserable condition, strangers to the covenants of promise, and destitute of the hope of salvation, and sat in darkness, and the shadow of death, and, as it were, at the gates of hell; were in the bonds of iniquity, and dead in sin, and had been for long time past foolish and disobedient, serving divers lusts and pleasures, to which they were in bondage. This is, indeed, a more tolerable sense than the former; but it will be difficult to show, that men, in the present state of life, are called "spirits", which seems to be a word that relates to the souls of men, in a separate state from their bodies; and especially that carnal and unconverted men are ever so called; and besides, the apostle is speaking of such who were disobedient in the times of Noah; and therefore not of the Gentiles, in the times of the apostles: add to which, that the transition from the times of the apostles, according to this sense, to the days of Noah, is very unaccountable; this sense does not agree with the connection of the words: others are of opinion, that this is meant of the souls of the Old Testament saints, who were εν φυλακη, "in a watch", as they think the phrase may be rendered, instead of "in prison": and said to be in such a situation, because they were intent upon the hope of promised salvation, and were looking out for the Messiah, and anxiously desiring his coming, and which he, by some gracious manifestation, made known unto them: but though the word may sometimes signify a watch, yet more commonly a prison, and which sense best suits here; nor is that anxiety and uneasiness, which represents them as in a prison, so applicable to souls in a state of happiness; nor such a gracious manifestation so properly called preaching; and besides, not believers, but unbelievers, disobedient ones, are here spoken of; and though it is only said they were sometimes so, yet to what purpose should this former character be once mentioned of souls now in glory? but it would be tedious to reckon up the several different senses of this place; some referring it to such in Noah's time, to whom the Gospel was preached, and who repented; and though they suffered in their bodies, in the general deluge, yet their souls were saved; whereas the apostle calls them all, "the world of the ungodly", 2Pe 2:5 and others, to the eight souls that were shut up in the ark, as in a prison, and were saved; though these are manifestly distinguished in the text from the disobedient spirits. The plain and easy sense of the words is, that Christ, by his Spirit, by which he was quickened, went in the ministry of Noah, the preacher of righteousness, and preached both by words and deeds, by the personal ministry of Noah, and by the building of the ark, to that generation who was then in being; and who being disobedient, and continuing so, a flood was brought upon them which destroyed them all; and whose spirits, or separate souls, were then in the prison of hell, so the Syriac version renders it, בשיול, "in hell", see Rev 20:7 when the Apostle Peter wrote this epistle; so that Christ neither went into this prison, nor preached in it, nor to spirits that were then in it when he preached, but to persons alive in the days of Noah, and who being disobedient, when they died, their separate souls were put into prison, and there they were when the apostle wrote: from whence we learn, that Christ was, that he existed in his divine nature before he was incarnate, he was before Abraham, he was in the days of Noah; and that Christ also, under the Old Testament, acted the part of a Mediator, in his divine nature, and by his Spirit discharged that branch of it, his prophetic office, before he appeared in human nature; and that the Gospel was preached in those early times, as unto Abraham, so before him.

Gill: 1Pe 3:20 - Which sometime were disobedient // while the ark was preparing // wherein few, that is, eight souls, were saved by water Which sometime were disobedient,.... To all the instructions and warnings which God gave them, to all the strivings of his Spirit, and to the ministry...

Which sometime were disobedient,.... To all the instructions and warnings which God gave them, to all the strivings of his Spirit, and to the ministry of Christ, by Noah; they continued in their profaneness and impiety, and to corrupt their ways, and fill the earth with violence and wickedness; not believing what they were threatened with, or that ever a flood would come upon them, and destroy them: and this "sometime" refers to the time of their being upon earth, who were now in hell; "to the days of Noah"; hereafter mentioned; and which the Syriac version connects with this clause, reading it thus, "who of old were disobedient in the days of Noah"; at which time it was, that Christ, by his Spirit in Noah, went and preached to them: when once the longsuffering of God waited in the days of Noah: that is, when God, who is longsuffering and patient, waited on these disobedient ones, in Noah's time, for the space of an hundred and twenty years:

while the ark was preparing; by Noah, according to the directions which God gave him, Gen 6:14 and which, as R. Tanchuma says b, was fifty two years a building; others say c an hundred years; but Jarchi says d it was an hundred and twenty; and which seems most likely, that being the term of time in which God's longsuffering waited on them; during which time Noah was preaching to them, and building the ark:

wherein few, that is, eight souls, were saved by water; the eight persons were, Noah, and his wife, and his three sons, Shem, Ham, and Japhet, and their three wives. It is a common tradition with the Jews e, that besides these, Og, king of Bashan, escaped the flood; and who, they say, is the same that escaped, and told Abraham of Lot's being carried captive by the kings f; the manner of his escape at the flood they relate thus g,

"Og came, who was delivered from the men that died at the flood; and he rode upon the ark, and he had a covering upon his head, and was fed with the food of Noah; but not for his worthiness was he delivered, but that the inhabitants of the world might see the power of the Lord;

and elsewhere h, after this manner, citing those words, "and Noah only remained alive, and they that were with him in the ark", Gen 7:23 they add,

"except Og, king of Bashan, who sat on a certain piece of wood which belonged to the scaffolding of the ark, and he swore to Noah, and his sons, that he would be their servant for ever. What did Noah do? he bored an hole in the ark, and every day reached out food to him, and he remained alive, according to what is said, Deu 3:11 "only Og, king of Bashan", &c.

But this is all a mere fiction; and equally fabulous is the account the Arabians give, who say i that eighty persons, together with Noah, were taken into the ark, among whom was Jorham, their father; for there were no more than eight persons saved; and this is the apostle's sense; and agreeably the Syriac version renders it, "and eight souls" בלחוד, "only entered into it, and were saved by water"; and we are told by some of the eastern writers k, that when these eight went out of the ark, they built a city, which they called Themanin, which, in the Arabic language, signifies "eight", according to their number. The ark was a type of Christ, into whom whoever enters by faith, or in whom whoever believes, shall be saved; but as they that entered into the ark were but few, so are those that enter in at the strait gate, or believe in Christ; and they that went into the ark were saved by the water bearing up the ark, even by that by which others were destroyed; as the very same thing, for different reasons, is the cause or means of destruction and salvation; so Christ is set, for the fall and rising of many, is a stumblingblock to some, and the power and wisdom of God to others; and the Gospel, and the ministers of it, are the savour of life unto life to some, and the savour of death unto death to others. This instance of the dispensation of the providence of God to the old world is very appropriately, though by way of digression, introduced by the apostle; showing, that in times past, as then, God's usual method has been to afford the outward means to ungodly men, and to bear with them long, and then bring down his vengeance upon them, and save his own people; and this suffering saints might depend upon would be their case, and therefore should bear their afflictions patiently,

Gill: 1Pe 3:21 - The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also now save us // is not the putting away of the filth of the flesh // but the answer of a good conscience towards God // by the resurrection of Jesus Christ The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also now save us,.... The ark, and deliverance by it, as it was a type of Christ, and salvation by him, s...

The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also now save us,.... The ark, and deliverance by it, as it was a type of Christ, and salvation by him, so it was a figure of baptism, and baptism was the antitype of that; or there is something in these which correspond, and answer to, and bear a resemblance to each other: as the ark was God's ordinance, and not man's invention, so is baptism, it is of heaven, and not of men; and as the ark, while it was preparing, was the scorn and derision of men, so is this ordinance of the Gospel; it was rejected with disdain by the Scribes and Pharisees, as it still is by many; and as the ark, when Noah and his family were shut up in it by God, represented a burial, and they seemed, as it were, to be buried in it, it was a lively emblem of baptism, which is expressed by a burial, Rom 6:4 and as they in the ark had the great deep broke up under them, and the windows of heaven opened over them, pouring out waters upon them, they were, as it were, immersed in, and were covered with water, this fitly figured baptism by immersion; nor were there any but adult persons that entered into the ark, nor should any be baptized but believers; to which may be added, that as the one saved by water, so does the other; for it is water baptism which is here designed, which John practised, Christ gave a commission for, and his disciples administered: it saves not as a cause, for it has no causal influence on, nor is it essential to salvation. Christ only is the cause and author of eternal salvation; and as those only that were in the ark were saved by water, so those only that are in Christ, and that are baptized into Christ, and into his death, are saved by baptism; not everyone that is baptized, but he that believeth, and is baptized, shall be saved, Mar 16:16, for baptism

is not the putting away of the filth of the flesh; the design of it is not to take off the sordid flesh, as circumcision did; or in a ceremonious way, outwardly, to sanctify to the purifying of the flesh, as the Jewish baptisms did; see Heb 9:10, or to take away either original or actual sin; this only the blood of Christ can do; and it is not a mere external cleansing of the body:

but the answer of a good conscience towards God; the Vulgate Latin renders it, "the interrogation of a good conscience"; referring, it may be, to the interrogations that used to be put to those who desired baptism; as, dost thou renounce Satan? dost thou believe in Christ? see Act 8:36, others render it, "the stipulation of a good conscience"; alluding also to the ancient custom of obliging those that were baptized to covenant and agree to live an holy life and conversation, to renounce the devil and all his works, and the pomps and vanities of this world; and baptism does certainly lay an obligation on men to walk in newness of life; see Rom 6:4, the Ethiopic version renders it, "confession of God"; and to this the Syriac version agrees, rendering it, "confessing God with a pure conscience"; for, to baptism, profession of faith in Christ, and of the doctrine of Christ in a pure conscience, is requisite; and in baptism persons make a public confession of God, and openly put on Christ before men: the sense seems plainly this; that then is baptism rightly performed, and its end answered, when a person, conscious to himself of its being an ordinance of Christ, and of his duty to submit to it, does do so upon profession of his faith in Christ, in obedience to his command, and "with" a view to his glory; in doing which he discharges a good conscience towards God: and being thus performed, it saves,

by the resurrection of Jesus Christ; being a means of leading the faith of the baptized person, as to the blood of Christ, for pardon and cleansing, so to the resurrection of Christ, to justification; see Act 2:38, moreover, the sense of the passage may be this, that baptism is a like figure as the ark of Noah was; that as the entrance of Noah and his family into the ark was an emblem of a burial, so their coming out of it was a figure of the resurrection; and just such a figure is baptism, performed by immersion, both of the resurrection of Christ from the dead, and of the resurrection of saints to walk in newness of life. The Arabic version renders the whole verse thus; "of which thing baptism is now a type saving us, not by removing the filth of the flesh only, but by exhilarating a good conscience towards God, by the resurrection of Jesus Christ".

Gill: 1Pe 3:22 - Who is gone into heaven // and is on the right hand of God // angels and authorities and powers being made subject unto him Who is gone into heaven,.... After he had been risen forty days, where he is received, and will remain, until the restitution of all things; and where...

Who is gone into heaven,.... After he had been risen forty days, where he is received, and will remain, until the restitution of all things; and where he appears in the presence of God for his people, and ever lives to make intercession for them; and is entered as their forerunner, and is preparing mansions of glory for them; and will come again, and take them to himself, to be for ever with him, and from hence they expect him:

and is on the right hand of God; where Stephen saw him; and which is an honour never conferred on any angel, or man; and shows that Christ had done his work, and that in a way acceptable to God; the Vulgate Latin version here adds "swallowing up death, that we might be made heirs of eternal life"; but is not supported by any copy or version:

angels and authorities and powers being made subject unto him; by "angels" may be meant angels both good and bad, who are all in subjection to Christ; and by authorities and powers, the kings, princes, and governors of this world, who hold their dominions from and under the Lord Jesus Christ; and which is an argument why believers should patiently bear all their sufferings and afflictions, since Christ has the government in his hands, and he rules and overrules all things for good; and when he pleases, he can put a stop to the rage and persecutions of men; and so the apostle returns to his former argument, in the following chapter.

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Ayat / Catatan Kaki

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:1 Grk “by the wives’ behavior.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:2 Grk “behavior,” the same word translated “the way you live” in vs. 1.

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:3 The word “jewelry” is not in the Greek text, but has been supplied to indicate that gold ornaments or jewelry is intended; otherwise the r...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:4 Grk “the hidden man.” KJV’s “the hidden man of the heart,” referring to a wife, could be seriously misunderstood by the ...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:6 Grk “doing good and not fearing any intimidation.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:7 Grk “so that your prayers may not be hindered.” Because of the length and complexity of the Greek, this clause was translated as a separat...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:8 There is no main verb in this verse (Grk “Finally, all [ ] harmonious”), but it continues the sense of command from the previous paragraph...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:9 The direct object “others” is omitted but implied in Greek, and must be supplied to suit English style.

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:10 Grk “stop.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:12 Verses 10-12 are a quotation from Ps 34:12-16.

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:13 Here καί (kai) has been translated as “For” to indicate that what follows gives an explanation.

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:14 A quotation from Isa 8:12.

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:15 Grk “the hope in you.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:16 Grk “when you are spoken against.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:17 Grk “if the will of God should will it.” As in 3:14 the Greek construction here implies that suffering for doing good was not what God nor...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:18 Put to death in the flesh…made alive in the spirit. The contrast of flesh and spirit is not between two parts of Christ’s person (material...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:19 And preached to the spirits in prison. The meaning of this preaching and the spirits to whom he preached are much debated. It is commonly understood t...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:20 Grk “in which,” referring to the ark; the referent (the ark) has been specified in the translation for clarity. Because of the length and ...

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:21 Or “response”; “answer.”

NET Notes: 1Pe 3:22 Grk “angels…having been subjected to him.”

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:1 Likewise, ( 1 ) ye wives, [be] in subjection to your own husbands; ( 2 ) that, if any obey not the word, they also may without the word be won by the ...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:3 ( 3 ) Whose adorning let it not be that outward [adorning] of plaiting the hair, and of wearing of gold, or of putting on of apparel; ( 3 ) He condem...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:4 But [let it be] the ( a ) hidden man of the heart, in that which is not corruptible, [even the ornament] of a meek and quiet spirit, which is ( b ) in...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:5 ( 4 ) For after this manner in the old time the holy women also, who trusted in God, adorned themselves, being in subjection unto their own husbands: ...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:6 Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him lord: whose daughters ye are, as long as ye do well, and are ( 5 ) not afraid with any amazement. ( 5 ) Beca...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:7 ( 6 ) Likewise, ye husbands, ( c ) dwell with [them] according to ( d ) knowledge, ( 7 ) giving ( e ) honour unto the wife, as unto the weaker ( f ) v...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:8 ( 10 ) Finally, [be ye] all of one mind, having compassion one of another, love as brethren, [be] pitiful, [be] courteous: ( 10 ) He turns to common ...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:9 ( 11 ) Not rendering evil for evil, or railing for railing: but contrariwise blessing; ( 12 ) knowing that ye are thereunto called, that ye should inh...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:10 ( 13 ) For he that will love life, and ( h ) see good days, let him refrain his tongue from evil, and his lips that they speak no guile: ( 13 ) A sec...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:12 For the eyes of the Lord [are] over the righteous, and his ears [are open] unto their prayers: but the ( i ) face of the Lord [is] against them that d...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:13 ( 14 ) And who [is] he that will harm you, if ye be followers of that which is good? ( 14 ) The second argument: when the wicked are provoked, they a...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:14 But and if ye suffer for righteousness' sake, happy [are ye]: ( 15 ) and be not afraid of their ( k ) terror, neither be troubled; ( 15 ) A most cert...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:15 But ( l ) sanctify the Lord God in your hearts: ( 16 ) and [be] ready always to [give] an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope tha...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:17 ( 17 ) For [it is] better, if the will of God be so, that ye suffer for well doing, than for evil doing. ( 17 ) A reason which stands upon two genera...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:18 ( 18 ) For Christ also hath once suffered for sins, ( 19 ) the just for the unjust, ( 20 ) that he might bring us to God, ( 21 ) being put to death in...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:19 ( 22 ) By which also he went and preached unto the spirits in prison; ( 22 ) A secret objection: Christ indeed might do this, but what is that to us?...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:20 Which sometime were disobedient, when ( n ) once the longsuffering of God waited in the days of Noah, while the ark was a preparing, wherein few, that...

Geneva Bible: 1Pe 3:21 ( 23 ) The like figure whereunto [even] baptism doth also now save us (not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good consci...

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Catatan Rentang Ayat

Maclaren: 1Pe 3:14-15 - A Libation To Jehovah Hallowing Christ Be not afraid of their terror, neither be troubled; but sanctify the Lord God in your hearts.'--1 Peter 3:14-15. THESE words are a q...

MHCC: 1Pe 3:1-7 - --The wife must discharge her duty to her own husband, though he obey not the word. We daily see how narrowly evil men watch the ways and lives of profe...

MHCC: 1Pe 3:8-13 - --Though Christians cannot always be exactly of the same mind, yet they should have compassion one of another, and love as brethren. If any man desires ...

MHCC: 1Pe 3:14-22 - --We sanctify God before others, when our conduct invites and encourages them to glorify and honour him. What was the ground and reason of their hope? W...

Matthew Henry: 1Pe 3:1-7 - -- The apostle having treated of the duties of subjects to their sovereigns, and of servants to their masters, proceeds to explain the duty of husbands...

Matthew Henry: 1Pe 3:8-15 - -- The apostle here passes from special to more general exhortations. I. He teaches us how Christians and friends should treat one another. He advises ...

Matthew Henry: 1Pe 3:16-17 - -- The confession of a Christian's faith cannot credibly be supported but by the two means here specified - a good conscience and a good conversatio...

Matthew Henry: 1Pe 3:18-20 - -- Here, I. The example of Christ is proposed as an argument for patience under sufferings, the strength of which will be discerned if we consider the ...

Matthew Henry: 1Pe 3:21-22 - -- Noah's salvation in the ark upon the water prefigured the salvation of all good Christians in the church by baptism; that temporal salvation by the ...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:1-2 - "THE SILENT PREACHING OF A LOVELY LIFE" Peter turns to the domestic problems which Christianity inevitably produced. It was inevitable that one marriage partner might be won for Christ, wh...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:3-6 - "THE TRUE ADORNMENT" Bengel speaks of "the labour bestowed on dress which consumes much time." Such labour is no modern thing. We have already seen that in the ancient ...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:7 - "THE HUSBAND'S OBLIGATION" Short as this passage is, it has in it much of the very essence of the Christian ethic. That ethic is what may be called a reciprocal ethic. It nev...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:8-12 - "(1) THE MARKS OF THE CHRISTIAN LIFE" Peter, as it were, gathers together the great qualities of the Christian life. (i) Right in the forefront he sets Christian unity. It is worth whil...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:8-12 - "(2)THE MARKS OF THE CHRISTIAN LIFE" (ii) Second, Peter sets sympathy. Here again the whole New Testament urges this duty upon us. We are to rejoice with those who rejoice and to weep ...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:13-15 - "THE CHRISTIAN'S SECURITY IN A THREATENING WORLD" In this passage we can see how Peter was soaked in the Old Testament; there are two Old Testament foundations for it. It is not so much that he actu...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:15-16 - "THE CHRISTIAN ARGUMENT FOR CHRIST" In a hostile and suspicious world it was inevitable that the Christian would be called upon to defend the faith he held and the hope by which he lived...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "THE SAVING WORK OF CHRIST" This is not only one of the most difficult passages in Peter's letter, it is one of the most difficult in the whole New Testament; and it is also th...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "THE EXAMPLE OF THE WORK OF CHRIST" Although this passage is one of the most difficult in the New Testament, it begins with something which anyone can understand. The point that Peter ...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "(1) THE DESCENT INTO HELL" We have already said that we are here face to face with one of the most difficult passages, not only in Peter's letter, but in the whole New Testame...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "(2) THE DESCENT INTO HELL" This doctrine of the descent into Hades, as we must now call it, is based on two phrases in our present passage. It says that Jesus went and preach...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "(3) THE DESCENT INTO HELL" We have seen that the attempt at the elimination of this passage fails. (ii) The second attitude is limitation. This attitude--and it is that of some...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "(4) THE DESCENT INTO HELL" (iii) There is the attitude that what Peter is saying is that Jesus Christ, between his death and resurrection, went to the world of the dead and pr...

Barclay: 1Pe 3:17-22 - "THE BAPTISM OF THE CHRISTIAN" Peter has been speaking about the wicked men who were disobedient and corrupt in the days of Noah; they were ultimately destroyed. But in the destru...

Constable: 1Pe 2:11--4:12 - --III. The responsibilities of the christian individually 2:11--4:11 Since Christians have a particular vocation i...

Constable: 1Pe 2:13--3:13 - --B. Respect for Others 2:13-3:12 This section of the letter clarifies what it means to function obedientl...

Constable: 1Pe 3:1-6 - --3. Wives' respect for their husbands 3:1-6 Having explained before how Christians should conduct themselves in the world, Peter next gave directions a...

Constable: 1Pe 3:7 - --4. Husbands' respect for their wives 3:7 Why did Peter write more about the conduct of women (vv...

Constable: 1Pe 3:8-12 - --5. The importance of loving enemies 3:8-12 Peter concluded this section of instructions concerning respect for others with a discussion of the importa...

Constable: 1Pe 3:13--4:7 - --C. Eventual Vindication 3:13-4:6 Peter previously explained how a Christian can rejoice in his suffering...

Constable: 1Pe 3:13-17 - --1. Suffering for doing good 3:13-17 3:13 This statement carries on what the psalmist said in the quotation just cited. If God will punish those who do...

Constable: 1Pe 3:18-22 - --2. The Vindication of Christ 3:18-22 Peter now reminded his readers of the consequences of Jesus' response to unjustified persecution. He did so to st...

College: 1Pe 3:1-22 - --1 PETER 3 D. WIVES, SUBMIT TO YOUR HUSBANDS (3:1-6) 1 Wives, in the same way be submissive to your husbands so that, if any of them do not believe t...

buka semua
Tafsiran/Catatan -- Lainnya

Evidence: 1Pe 3:1 Do not preach to loved ones, or express frustration or anger because they don’t believe. Win them with your works rather than your words. Buy them g...

Evidence: 1Pe 3:8 Witnessing tips. “When you approach a careless individual, be sure to treat him kindly. Let him see that you are talking with him, not because you ...

Evidence: 1Pe 3:12 QUESTIONS & OBJECTIONS “If God is a God of love, why hasn’t He dealt with evil?” In Dr. Robert Morey’s book The New Atheism and the Erosio...

Evidence: 1Pe 3:15 Fear of questions. “In a terrible accident at a railroad crossing, a train smashed into a car and pushed it nearly four hundred yards down the trac...

Evidence: 1Pe 3:20 Peter believed the Genesis account of Noah’s Flood—that is was a worldwide deluge in which only eight people were saved.

buka semua
Pendahuluan / Garis Besar

Robertson: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) THE FIRST EPISTLE GENERAL OF PETER ABOUT a.d. 65 By Way of Introduction The Author The Epistle is not anonymous, but claims to be written by "...

JFB: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) ITS GENUINENESS is attested by 2Pe 3:1. On the authority of Second Peter, see the Introduction. Also by POLYCARP (in EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History,...

JFB: 1 Peter (Garis Besar) ADDRESS TO THE ELECTED OF THE GODHEAD: THANKSGIVING FOR THE LIVING HOPE TO WHICH WE ARE BEGOTTEN, PRODUCING JOY AMIDST SUFFERINGS: THIS SALVATION AN ...

TSK: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) As the design of this Epistle is excellent, remarks Dr. Macknight, so is its execution, in the judgment of the best critics, does not fall short of it...

TSK: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) Overview 1Pe 3:1, He teaches the duty of wives and husbands to each other; 1Pe 3:8, exhorting all men to unity and love; 1Pe 3:14, and to suffer p...

Poole: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) PETER CHAPTER 3

MHCC: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) The same great doctrines, as in St. Paul's epistles, are here applied to same practical purposes. And this epistle is remarkable for the sweetness, ge...

MHCC: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) (1Pe 3:1-7) The duties of wives and husbands. (1Pe 3:8-13) Christians exhorted to agree. (1Pe 3:14-22) And encouraged to patience under persecutions...

Matthew Henry: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) An Exposition, with Practical Observations, of The First Epistle General of Peter Two epistles we have enrolled in the sacred canon of the scripture w...

Matthew Henry: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) Wherein the apostle describes the duties of husbands and wives one to another, beginning with the duty of the wife (1Pe 3:1-7). He exhorts Christia...

Barclay: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) INTRODUCTION TO THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER The Catholic Or General Epistles First Peter belongs to that group of New Testament letters which are k...

Barclay: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) The Silent Preaching Of A Lovely Life (1Pe_3:1-2) The True Adornment (1Pe_3:3-6) The Husband's Obligation (1Pe_3:7) (1) The Marks Of The Christian...

Constable: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) Introduction Historical background This epistle claims that the Apostle Peter wrote it...

Constable: 1 Peter (Garis Besar) Outline I. Introduction 1:1-2 II. The identity of Christians 1:3-2:10 A....

Constable: 1 Peter 1 Peter Bibliography Bailey, Mark L., and Thomas L. Constable. The New Testament Explorer. Nashville: Word Publ...

Haydock: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) THE FIRST EPISTLE OF ST. PETER, THE APOSTLE. INTRODUCTION. This first Epistle of St. Peter, though brief, contains much doctrine concerning fa...

Gill: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) INTRODUCTION TO 1 PETER That Simon, called Peter, an apostle of Jesus Christ, was the writer of this epistle, is not questioned by any; nor was the...

Gill: 1 Peter 3 (Pendahuluan Pasal) INTRODUCTION TO 1 PETER 3 In this chapter the apostle instructs wives how to behave towards their husbands, and husbands how to behave towards thei...

College: 1 Peter (Pendahuluan Kitab) INTRODUCTION This commentary is written for the general reader with a serious interest in Scripture. Its purpose is to provide a historical interpret...

College: 1 Peter (Garis Besar) OUTLINE I. THE GREETING - 1:1-2 II. A CALL TO BE HOLY - 1:3-2:10 A. The Hope of Salvation - 1:3-9 B. The Glory of This Salvation - 1:10-1...

Advanced Commentary (Kamus, Lagu-Lagu Himne, Gambar, Ilustrasi Khotbah, Pertanyaan-Pertanyaan, dll)


TIP #16: Tampilan Pasal untuk mengeksplorasi pasal; Tampilan Ayat untuk menganalisa ayat; Multi Ayat/Kutipan untuk menampilkan daftar ayat. [SEMUA]
dibuat dalam 2.48 detik
dipersembahkan oleh
bible.org - YLSA